Skip to main content

Full text of "The dictionary of entomology"

See other formats


THE 
DICTIONARY OF ENTOMOLOGY. 


i. 2 OP 3 73 2 
eee 
_ 


THE DICTIONARY 


OF 


ENTOMOLOGY, 


BY. 
N. K. JARDINE) F.E.S. 


| = | 
pee 4 os, 
PUBLISHED AT LONDON AGENTS : 
2, CASTLE STREET, WEST, NEWMAN & CO., 


ASHFORD, KENT. 54, HATTON GARDEN, E.C. 


HEADLEY BROTHERS, 
PRINTERS, 


ASHFORD, KENT; AND BISHOPSGATE, E.C 


INTRODUCTION. 


In view of the necessity in Entomology of the 
acceptance of a universal code of terms to differen- 
tiate or describe the parts or characteristics of 
insects, and owing to the absence of such a work, 
I have, through the courtesy of the authorities of 
the British Museum (Natural History), availed myself 
of the use of their extensive library to compile this 
book. 


I also have to acknowledge my indebtedness to 
Professor F. V. Theobald for reading the proof-sheets, 
and for his valuable advice; to Mr. Gahan for the 
great interest he has taken in this publication ; and to 
Miss E. H. Clemetson, Assoc. Inst. of Linguists, for 
revising the derivations. 


I shall be happy to be notified of any omissions 
in this, the first edition, in order to render future 
issues more complete. 


NIGEL K. JARDINE. 
2, CASTLE STREET, 


ASHFORD, KENT. 


LIST OF ABBREVIATIONS. 


Ai One arye dis as sd Anglo-Saxon. 

IATA SES 2. os re ok Arabic. 

Ores eee Sasi Celtic ; used us a general term 
for Irish, Gaelic, Welsh, and 
Cornish. 

BANS inte Danish. 

DU pee eet eke Dutch. 

| Dace eRe rari eu English. 

ee ee roky a Sis French. 

(CAG) Aare mee: Gaelic. 

(ECS) eee ect oneae Gra German. 

Gree slo S59 Greek. 

(oo) a ae Icelandic. 

1G (oo ee a eee ae Indo-germanic. 

| be eet Se Italian. 

| iS ea ene Latin 

| Sa ae rae Middle English; English of the 


thirteenth, fourteenth, and 
fifteenth centuries. 


INIOGS? Bees. oo. Modern. 
OU es Old French. 


Vii. 


OG har ss Old Low German. 


OSS ee aa Old Spanish. 
i) tae coe Persian. 
Scand. Scandinavian ; used as a general 


term for Icelandic, Swedish, 
Danish and Norwegian. 


SK. fea se oe Sanskrit. 
Spans % sees oo: Spanish. 
Swed... Fcnteascrcee: Swedish. 
Tent ose. Teutonic ; English, Dutch, 


German, Gothic and Scandi- 
navian. 


Vill. 


EXPLANATION OF THE SYMBOLS. 


Following the method used by Professor Skeat 
in his Ktymological Dictionary, the symbol ++ is 
employed. to distinguish forms which are cognate 
and which are adduced to illustrate and confirm 
the etymology. 

The symbol — signifies derived from. Example :— 
Furred, (F. — O.L.G.), M.E. forre, meaning, 
French, derived from old Low German; Middle 
English forre. 

The abbreviation Ders, signifies derivatives of 
the primary word. 


, 
. L - { 
« 7 ; 7 
' wt * - 
‘ , : 
q r 
. n i 
a or 
t 
' 1 » 
' « 
‘ 
. 
: ¥ 
. ~\s : 
’ - = 
~ 
S ’ 
' = r 
> ‘ 
1 = : = 
\ 
‘ 
' 
Bo - : 
i a - 
= 
. 
a 1 - 
~ . 
« a : 
at 7 = 7 
- 4 
. 
. = - 
- 2 ‘ . 
ww 
> 
y « A * 
. 
. 
. 
: { 
- , : i 
x - 
' 
Te 
i 
a 
. 
. 
‘ 
i « ‘ 
= 
t 
‘ - 
j 
1 
* 
- 
- 


THE DICTIONARY OF ENTOMOLOGY. 


A.—A prefix of Latin and Greek words, and as a 
prefix to Latin words, means, away from, as 
avert, to turn from ; and when prefixed to Greek 
words, it means, not, or without, as atom, what 
cannot be divided. 


Abbreviate, Abbreviatus.—Disproportionately short 
in part; when apparently unnaturally 
shortened. (L. ad, and brevis, short.) 


Abbreviate fascia.—A fascia traversing less than 
half the wing. (See Dimidiate fascia.) 


Abdomen.—The portion of an insect comprising all 
the segments beyond the podeon, or peduncle. 
(Newman.) 

The posterior apodous region of the body, 
consisting of ten or fewer segments, which are 
usually freely articulated, although occasionallv 
some of them are fused. (Boas.) 

The third and last chief division of the body 
of insects (Burmeister). (L. abdo, to conceal.) 


Abdominal ganglia —Small oval nerve centres, 
situated one in each segment, between the 
alimentary canal and the large ventral 
muscles. (L. abdo, and ganglion.) 


Abd 2 


Abductor coxa.—The second of the powerful coxee 
muscles. (L. ab, from, away from, and duco, 
ductum, to lead or draw.) 


Aborted.—Incomplete, undeveloped. (lL. aborto, 
old form of abortio, to miscarry.) 


Absconditum.—(Head) see Concealed. (L. abs, 
away from, and condo, to hide.) 


Acarina.—A family of Arachnoide, including mites, 
ticks, etc. (Gr. A, not, and Keiro, to cut). 


Aeclivous.—A gentle ascent of the surface; rising 
in a gradual slope. (L. ad, and clivus,a slope.) 


Aecrescente.—Gradually increasing in thickness 
towards the apex, and generally applied to 
the antenne. (L. ad, and cresco, cretum, to 
grow.) 


Acetabula.—The cotyloid cavities, the cavities 
of the thorax, in which the legs are inserted, 
formed by the sternum and epimerum, and 
sometimes the epigastrium. (L. acetabulum, a 
cup-shaped vessel.) 


Acetabuliform.—Resembling a circular shallow 
saucer, the sides of which are more or less 
incurved. (L. acetabulum, and form, shape.) 
See Calathiform. 


Acetabulum.—The mesostethium, or large central 
piece situated next to the peristethium, and 
behind the sockets of the intermediate legs. 
(L. acetabulum.) 


3 Aci 


Acetabulum.—The segment of the postpectus that 
is situated behind the peristethium. It is 
bounded on each side by the Parapleurs, and 
behind by the meriane; it contains cavities 
for the reception of the intermediate legs. (L. 
a cup-shaped vessel.) 


Achatine.— Painted with various concentric, curved, 
or parallel lines, resembling the veining of an 
agate. (Gr. Achates, a river in Sicily, where 
agates were found.) 


Achromatin.—The water-like substance of the 
nucleus; the substance composing the remain- 
der of the surrounding matter—after taking 
away the chromatin—of the nucleus. (Gr. A, 
and chroma, colour.) 


Aciculz.—Prickles, spines. (L. acicula, a little 
needle.) 


Acicular.—Slender, needle-shaped. (L. acicula.) 


Aciculate.—Covered with small scratches. (L. 
acicula.) 


Acid.—(Scent) a pungent sour smell. (L. acidus, 
sour.) 

Acidotheca.—The case of the ovipositor, that 
portion of the theca enclosing the ovipositor. 
Acies.—The extreme termination of the margin. 

(L. the edge.) 


Acinacieate.—Falchion-shaped ; curved with the 
apex truncate and growing gradually wider 
towards the end. (Pers. acinaces, a sabre.) 


2 


Aci 4 


Acini.—Granulations. (L. acinus, seed stone.) 


Aciniform.—Cimiter-shaped, one thick and straight 
edge, the other thin and curved. (L. acinus, 
and forma, shape.) 


Acone eyes.—Eyes which have not a crystalline 
cone in their structure. (Gr. A, and konos, a 
cone.) 


Acron.—The first segment of the Ant. (Wheeler.) 
(Gr. acros, at the top, the extremity.) 


Acuductate, Acuducted.—Scratched across very 
finely as if with the point of a needle. (Con- 
structed from L. acus, a needle.) 


Aculeate.—Produced into a point; or as applied 
to Hymenoptera, furnished with a sting. (L. 
from acuo, to sharpen.) 


Aculeate.—Furnished with prickles. Armed with 
sharp points. 


Aculeate-serrate.—Armed with numerous. short 
spines inclining towards one end, as do the teeth 
of a small hand-saw. 


Aculei.—Small sharp points or spines. (L.) 


Aculeus.—The instrument and appendages with 
which the female lays her eggs. (LL. the sharp 
point, acuteness.) 


Aculeus.—An appendage of the telum seen in 
bees—the sting. (L.) 


Acuminate.—Ending in a prolonged point. (L. 
acuo, to sharpen.) 


i —“CtsCCtitit(#(#w#weeeoeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeeee 


5 Ed 


Acuminated.—Tapering to a point; pointed. 
(From L. acuminatus, pa. par. of acumino, to 
sharpen.) 


Ad.—A [Latin prefix, signifying to. 


Adermata.—(Pupa) When the prior skin is thrown 
off, and the wings, antenne, etc., of the future 
imago appear through the case. (From Gr. 
a, and derma, skin.) 


Adductor coxal.—One of the powerful cox muscles. 
(L. ad, and dco, to lead ; and coxa.) 


Adherent.—(Pupzx) See Pup adhaerene. (L. ad, 
and haereo, haesum, to stick.) 


Adiaphanous.—Transparency of surface which does 
not transmit the light at all. (Gr. a, and 
diaphanes, transparent.) 


Adminicula.—Elevated or indented stripes found 
upon many pupe. Minute teeth on the dorsal 
surface of the abdomen of subterranean pupe, 
by which they are able to reach the surface. 
(From L. adminiculum, a prop, an assistance.) 

Adnate.—Growing to by its whole length, adhering 
or growing together. (L. ad, and natus, grown.) 

Appressed.—Contiguous ; pressed to. (L. adpressus, 
pa. par. of adprimo, to press to; ad, to and 
premo, to press.) 

Aduncate.—Gradually bending trom the direct line. 
(L. ad, and uncus, a hook.) 

AEdaegus.—The structure attached to, and slung 
by its middle from, the roof of the pygefer. 
(From Gr. aidoia, the secret parts.) 


Fed 6 


Edeagus.—The intromittent organ of the male 
with its appendages. (From Gr. aidova.) 


/Eneus.—Bright brassy, or golden-green colour. 
(L. aenus, brazen.) 


7Equata.—Equal. (L. e@qualis, even, equal.) 


Aeriducts.—Respiratory organs on the sides of the 
abdomen, tail, and trunk of aquatic larve and 
pup. (L. aér, air, and ductum, to lead.) 


7Eroscepsin.—A supposed unknown sense, of which 
the antennz are, by some, believed to be the 
organs. (Gr. aér, air, and skopeo (skepsis, 
perception by the senses) to observe closely.) 
See Aeroscepsy. 


Aeroscepsy.—The faculty of preception by the 
medium of the air ascribed to the antenne of 
insects. (Gr. aer, and skopeo.) 


Agamie.—Capable of reproducing without the 
agency of the male. (Gr. a, and gamos, marriage.) 


Air-saes.—An enlargement of the trachee into 
sacs or pouches, which are seen to lie super- 
ficially beneath the hypodermis in various parts 
of the body. (L. aér, and saccus, a bag.) 


Aeruginous.—-The colour of verdigris. (LL. @rugo, 
rust of copper, verdigris.) 


Agglutinate.—Fastened closely together, welded. 
(L. ad, and gluten, glue.) 


Aheneus.—Bright brassy, or golden-green colour. 
(L. aheneus, brazen.) 


Alze.—The wings of insects. (L. ala, a wing.) 


7 Alu 


Alar.—Pertaining to the wings. 


Alary muscles.— Muscles supporting the pericardial 
diaphragm. (L. ala, and musculus, a muscle.) 


Alatate.—(Egg) Provided with lateral wings. 
(L. alatus, winged.) 


Alatate (ala‘a). (Tibia) Winged,—furnished with 
an attenuated dilated process, much resembling 
the extended membrane which constitutes the 
wing of a bat, but not so flexible. (L. alatus, 
winged.) 

Alate, Alated, Alatus.—Winged; furnished with 


wings, or with projecting bodies resembling 
wings. (L. ala.) 


Albidus.—A dirty, impure white. (L. albus, white.) 
Albus.—Pure white. (L. albus.) 


Alitrunk.—The term given to the fore-body of 
insects which have the protothorax reduced, 
and the three segments of the fore-body and 
first segment ot the hind-body fused together. 
(L. ala, and truncus, trunk.) 


Alliaceous.—(Scent.) A garlic-like smell. (L. 
allium, garlic.) 

Allux.—‘ Toe Ball,” the third joint of the tarsi 
(remarkable in Rhyncophora). (L.) 


Alula.—The alar appendage, a lobiform appendage 
at the base of each wing of Diptera; plural 
alulee, “little wings.” (L. ala.) 


Alulet.—[See Aluia. ] 


Alu 8 


Alutaceous.—Covered with minute cracks. (From 
L. aluta, leather.) 


Alveolate.—Furnished with cells. (L. alveus, a 
hollow.) 


Alveole.—A cell. (L. alveus.) 


Am, Amb.—A Latin prefix signifying about ; 
around. 


Ambient vein.—The term given to the costal 
nervure or vein when it completely encircles 
the wing. (L. amb, and tens, going ; and vein.) 


Ambulant.—Moving from place to place. (L. 
ambulo, to walk.) 


Ambulate.—To move backwards and forwards. 
(L. ambulo.) 


Ambulatorial.—Used for walking. (L. ambulo.) 


Ametabolous.—Differing neither in form, structure, 
nor habits from the adult. (Gr. a, and metabole, 
change.) 


Amethystine.—Resembling the purple splendour 
of the amethyst. (Fr. amethystin, resembling 
amethyst in colour). 


Amnion.—The inner membrane continuous with 
the ectoderm of the primitive streak, which 
protects the developing embryo. (Gr. amnion.) 


Amorpha.—Insects in which the pupa (provided 
with neither mouth nor organs of locomotion) 
bears no resemblance to the imago. (Gr. a, and 
morphe, shape.) 


9 Ana 


Amphi.—A prefix in words of Greek origin, signily- 
ing both, about, around. 


Amphipneustic.—A term given to one of the inter- 
mediate types between the Holopneustic and 
Apneustic tracheal systems :—When a pair of 
spiracles, situated at each end of the body, are 
open, and the intermediate spiracles closed. 
(Most dipterous larvee.) (Gr. amphi, and from 
pneuma, air.) 


Amplixicate—(L. amplus, large.) See Dilatate. 


Ampullaceous  sensillz.—More or less upright 
conical sense hairs, greatly resembling the 
ceeloconic type; but the hair is more upright 
and smaller, while the pit which encloses the 
base is circular, much deeper, and opens on the 
surface by a small pore. (Berlese.) (L. 
ampulla, a vessel; and from sensus, the sense.) 


Ampulliform.—Bottle-shaped ; swollen; resem- 
bling an inflated bladder. (L, ampulla, and 
form.) 


An.—A form of the Greek prefix a; an abbreviation 


of che Greek prefix ana. 


Ana.—<As a Greek prefix, means up, up or all through, 
back, again, according to. 


Anal.—Pertaining to the anus. (L. anus, the 
fundament.) 


Anal area.—(Wing) That portion of the wing lying 
between the anal nervure and the posterior 
margin. (L. anus, and area.) 


Ana 10 


Anal angle.—(Wing) The angle between the 
dorsum and the tergum (see Tornus). (L. anus, 
and ang: dus, an angle.) 


Anal cleft.—A deep incision seen in the females 
of Lecaniine extending from the anal orifice. 
(L. anus, and Scand. clift, a cleft.) 


Anal glands.—T wo bilobed sacs extending from the 
base of the last, to the middle of the second 
abdominal segment. (L. anus, and glans.) 


Anal nervure.—Nerve of the wing, separating the 
cubitus from the anal area. (L. anus, and 
L. nerve, a cord.) ; 


Anal Opereulum.—(LL. anus, and operculum, a lid 
or cover.) See Suranal plates. 


Anal papilla.—Four soft, white protuberances, 
situated on the posterior end of the body (ninth 
abdom. seg.), surrounding the anus dorso- 
laterally and ventro-laterally of the Anopheles 
larvee. (L. anus, or papille, small tubercles.) 


Anastomosing.—Running into one another like 
veins. (Gr. ana, and stoma, mouth.) 


Anastomosis.—The stigma; a spot in the upper 
wing, at the branching of the nervures, near the 
costal edge. The term is generally used to 
indicate the connection of nervures of the wing. 
(Gr. ana, and stoma.) 


Anastomosis.—Inosculation, or the opening of one 
vessel into another, as of one artery or vein Into 
another. (Gr. ana, and stoma.) 


Anceps.—Two-edged. (L.) 


ifs Ani 


Anchor process.—The curious, fleshy process 
situated close to the anterior extremity of the 
larvee of some of the Diptera. (Cecidomyide.) 
(A.S. ancor,—L, ancora, a bend; and process.) 


Ancipital.— Possessing two opposite edges or angles. 
(L. am, on both sides, and caput, the head.) 


Androconia.—Small scent-scales found on the 
upper side of the fore wings, occurring in limited 
areas, such as the discal spots, or on the folds 
of the wings. 


Angle—Is that portion where the margins, or two 
parts meet. (L. angulus, an angle.) 


Angular.— When the angular margins do not exclu- 
sively elbow outwards, but also inwards. (L. 
angulus.) 


Angular.—(Pupa). (L. angulus.) See Pups Angu- 
lares. 


Angulate.—Angular, having angles. (L. angulus.) 


‘Anguloso-Undulate.—When fascie, strigse, lines, 
ete., go in a zig-zag direction, or with alternate 
acute sinuses. (L. angudus, and unda, a wave.) 


Angustate.—Beginning with a narrow base, then 
dilating and thickening. Disproportionately 
narrow in part. (L. angustus, narrow.) 


Angustate (angusia'e). (Antenne) Contrary to 
Nodose ; having the intermediate and terminal 
joints thinner than the remainder. (L. angustus.) 


Aniso.—Unequal; a prefix to terms in natural 
history. (Gr. a, and isos, equal.) 


Ani 12 


Anisomorpha.—In which the metamorphosis 1s 
various. (Gr. a@, isos, and morphe, shape.) 


Annulata.—A province of animals in which the 
body is transversely divided into rings. (L. 
annubus, a ring.) 

Annular lamina.—The sternal plates of the ninth »* 
segment in the Ants which lie in front of the 


genital appendages. (L. annulus, a ring, and 
lamina, a plate.) 


Annulate.—Ringed; surrounded by a narrow ring 
of different colour. (L. annulus.) 


Annulet.—A narrow differently coloured circle. 
(L. annulus.) 

Ant.—A prefix (see Anti). 

Ante.—Latin prefix signifying before. 


Antefurea.—An internal process of the antepectus 
for the attachment of muscles. (L. ante, and 
furca, a fork.) 


Antenne.—The ‘ Feelers”; two movable and 
jointed sensiferous organs, situated upon the 
head, generally between or before the eyes. 
(LL. antenna, a sail-yard.) 


Antennary.—Pertaining to the antenne. (L. 
antenna.) 
Antennary nerves.—|See Nervi antennarum. ] 


Antepectus.—The underside of the prothorax. 
(L. ante, and pectus, the breast.) 


Antepenultimate.—The last but two. (L. ante, 
and pene, almost, ultimus, last.) 


13 Anu 


Anterior.—Belore in place; previous. (L. ante, 
before.) 


Anterior angle.—(Thorax.)—The lateral angle 
near the head on each side. (L. ante, and 
angulus, a corner.) 


Anterior margin.—(Wing.)—The costal margin ; 
the margin on the anterior side of the wings, 
extending from the base to the apex. 


Anterior palpi.—The labial palpi. 
Anterior wings.—The superior or upper wings. 


Anthracinus.—Coal black, a deep shiny black, with 
a bluish tinge. (Gr. anthrax, coal.) 

Anti--—Greek prefix signifying opposite, against, 
or in place of. 

Anticlypeus.—The anterior part of the clypeus to 
which the labrum is attached. (Sharp.) (L. 
ante, and clypeus, a shield.) 


Antlia.—The oral instrument of Lepidoptera, in 
which the ordinary trophi are replaced by a 
spiral, bipartite, tubular machine for suction, 
with its appendages. It includes the solen- 
aria, and fistula. (Gr. ant?, and lego, to speak.) 


Antrorsum.—(Direction) Forward, in  contra- 
distinction to Rursus—backward. (Gr. anti, 
not, and L. rursus, backward.) 


Anus.—The vent; the terminal portion and 
external opening of the rectum, situated in the 
end of the body in the tenth or eleventh seg- 
ment ; it is bounded on the sides by the paranal 
lobes, and beneath by the infra-anal lobes.  (L. 
the fundament.) 


Aor 14 


Aorta.—The blood tube; a slender tube opening 
from the foremost chamber of the ‘“ heart,” and 
passing forwards to the head, ending in the 
neighbourhood of the brain in a trumpet-shaped 
opening. A special contractile sac is situated 
at the base of each antenne, into which it 
propels blood received from the head cavity. 
(L.—Gr. Late L. aorta—Greek, meaning the 
great artery “rising” from the heart.) 


Apex.—(Wing) The angle between the costa and 
the outer ecge. (L. apez.) 


Apex.—The tip, pomt or summit. (L.) 


Apex abdominis.—(L. apex, and abdomen.) See 
Cremaster. 


Aphidivorous.—Devouring aphids. (L. aphis, a 
plant louse, and voro, to devour.) 


Apices.—Plural of apex. 


Apiculate.—Covered with fleshy, erect, short points. 
(From L. apex.) 

Apneustic.—The term given to the closed or 
secondary and adaptive type of tracheal system. 
This type is distinguished by the want of 
stigmata, or, if present, they are closed and do 
not function. (Gr. a, and from pneuma, air.) 


Apo.—A Greek prefix signifying away from. 
Apod, Apodal.—Without legs. (Gr. a, and ous, 
podos, the foot.) 


Apodema.—A broad transverse band crossing the 
thorax in front of the scutellum seen in male 
coccids. (Gr. apo, from, and demas, the body.) 


15 App 


Apodemes.—Hollow conical sclerite, showing a pit 
outwardly and a tubular process pointing in- 
wardly towards the body cavity in front of 
the metasternum, and serve for the attach- 
ment of muscles. (Gr. apo, from, and demas, 
the body.) . 


Apodous.—Footless. (Gr. a, and pous, podos, the 
foot.) 


Apophysis.—An extra projecting piece or the 
prolongation of an existing organ (e.g., the coxal 
apophyses in Dytiscus.) (Gr. apo, and physis, 
growth.) 


Apophysis.—The coxe, the two small basal joints 
of the legs. (Gr. apo, and physis.) 

Appendicle.—A movable organ, often biarticulate, 
which, terminating the surface anteriorly, covers 
the mouth from beneath, and is situated between 
the maxille. (L. appendicula, a small appen- 
dage.) 

Appendicula.—[See Appendicle. | 

Appendiculate.—Furnished with appendices, or 
additions of lines, furrows, or organs of the 
body. (L. ad, and pendo, to hang.) 

Appendiculated.—Furnished with an appendicle ; 
possessing appendicles. (L. appendicula.) 

Apposed.—With their surfaces lying one against 
the other. (L. ad, and from pono, positum, to 
place.) 

Approaching.—Converging. (L. ad, and prope, 


near.) 


App 16 


Approximate (ant. approxima‘). (Antenne) When 
the basal joints are placed very closely together. 
(L. ad, and superlative of prope, near.) 


Aptera.—An order of insects which undergo prac- 
tically no metamorphosis, and are destitute of 
wings; the mouth is mandibulate or slightly 
haustellate. (Gr. a, and p‘eron, a wing.) 

Apterous.—Wingless. (Gr. a, and pteron.) 

Arachnoidz.—A class of the Articulata, including 
spiders, mites, and scorpions. (Gr. arachne, a 
spider, and ezdos, form.) 

Arachnoideous.—Cobweb-like ; resembling cobweb. 
(Gr. arachne, a spider, and from e7dos, form.) 

Araneidz.—The spider family. [See Arachnoide. | 

Arched nerves.—T wo nerves arising from the two 
upper basal portions of the cura cerebri, con- 
necting the central, and vagus nervous systems. 
(L. arcus, a bow, and nerves.) 

Arcuate.—Bow-like ; linear, and bent like a bow. 
(LL. arcus.) 

Arcuatus.—Arched ; a margin in the form of a bow. 
(L. arcus.) 

Areolate.— Furnished with small areas, like a net- 
work. (L. area, a vacant space.) 

Areolet.—A cell, or enclosed space formed by the 
nervures of a wing. (L. area.) 

Argenteus.—White metallic colour, — silver-like. 
(L. argenteus.) 

Arista.—A slender style or bristle, chiefly confined 
to the antennz of Diptera. (L. arista, an awn.) 


17 Art 


Aristate——Furnished with hair. (L. avista.) 


Armature.—The horny parts of the genitalia. 
(L. armatura, armour.) 


Arolia.—The term used to the pulvilli according 
to the order of the insect. 


Aromatic.—(Scent) A pungent smell of spices. 
(Gr. aromatikos, from aroma, spice.) 


Arquate, Arquated.—Bowed ; arcuate.—(L. 
arquatus, arched, bowed, curved.) 

Arthricum.—The fourth joint of the tarsi. (Gr. 
arthron, a joint.) 


Arthroderm.—The outer crust, or body wall of 
Articulates. (Packard.) (Gr. arthron, and 
derma, the skin.) 


Arthromere.—The term denoting the elemental 
part of a joimted or articulate animal, the 
typical ring or segment. (Gr. arthron, a joint, 
and meros, a part.) 

Arthropleura.—The pleural or limb-bearing region 
of the body; that portion of the Arthromere 
situated between the tergite and_ sternite. 
(Packard.) (From Gr. arthron, and pleura, a 
side.) 

Articulata.—(lacinia) The term used when the blade 
of the maxille is united by a distinct and free 
joint, instead of a fixed sutural line. (I. 
articulus, a joint.) 

Articulate-—Jointed. (L. articulus.) 


Articulate fascia.—A fascia consisting of contig- 
uous spots. (L. articulus and fascia, a band.) 


Art 18 


Artus.—The instruments of motion. (L. a limb.) 


Asperate-—Roughened, of sculpture. (L. asper, 
rough.) 


Asper.—Rough or uneven. (L.) 


Assurgent.—Declining at the base and rising in a 
curve to an erect position (Say). (L. ad, and 
surgo, to rise.) 


Asymmetrical.—With one side of the body different 
tothe other. (Gr. a, syn, and metron, a measure.) 

Atavie variations.—Variations which recall a past 
stage in the history of the race. (L. atavus, an 
ancestor, and vario, various.) 

Ater.—The colour of liquid ink, ink-like—some- 
times termed Aterrimus. (L. black.) 

Aterrimus.—[See Ater. | 

Aterrimus.—Ink-like in colour. (L. ater.) 

Atomi.—Atoms of colouring, large, and _ easily 
distinguished. (L. atomos, an atom.) 

Atmosphere.—The term given to the exterior circle 
of the eye of colour (ocellus.) (Coined from Gr. 
atmo, stem of atmos, air, and sphaira, a globe.) 

Atroceruleus.— Dark, deep blue, inclining to black. 
(L. ater, black, caeruleus, blue.) 

Atrophied.—Imperfectly developed. (Gr. a, and 
trophe, nourishment.) 

Atropurpureus.—Dark purple-to-black. (L. ater, 
black, and purpura, purple.) 

Atrous.—The purest and most intense — black. 
(From L. ater.) 


19 Aux 


Atrovirens.—Dark green to black. (L. ater, dark, 
and virens, green.) 


Attennatus.—Provided with antennie. (L. antenna.) 


Attenuante.—(Antenne) Gradually tapering to 
the apex. (L. ad, and tenuis, thin.) 


Attenuate, Attenuated.—Gradually diminished, 
tapering. Disproportionately slender in part. 
(L. ad, and tenuo, to make pointed.) 


Aurantiacus.—Orange in colour ; a mixture of red 
and yellow. (From L. aureus.) 


Aurantius.—The colour of an orange. (L. aureus, 
golden.) 


Aurelia.—Ancient term for pupa, or chrysalis. 
(L. aurelia, pupa of a golden colour.) 


Aureus.—-Golden, orange-like in colour. (L. golden.) : 


Aurichalceous.—The metallic yellow of brass. 
(From L. aurichalcum, yellow copper ore.) 


Auricle-—An appendage resembling an ear. (L. 
auricula, an ear.) 


Auriculo- ventricular openings.—The openings seen 
in the constricted parts of the dorsal vessel. 
(incompos. from L. auricula.) 


Auritate.—(Egg) Ear-like appendages placed at one 


end; ear-like. (L. auricula). 


Auritus.—Furnished with ears (two little append- 
ages). (L. auritus.) 


Auxillary optic nerves.—(L. auaxilium, help, from 
augeo, to increase.) See Nervioptici secundarii. 


8 


Axe 20 


Axes.—-The horny pieces connecting the wings to 
the body. (L. azis.) 


Axis.—A small prominent process at the base of 
the elytra, upon which it turns. (L. aris, an 
axis, axle-tree, ++ Gr.) 

Axillary.—Springing from the point of union of two 
parts. (L. azvs.) 

Axillary incision.—|See Incisura axillaris. ] 


Azureus.—Clear brilliant blue. (F.—Arab.—Pers. 
azure, blue.) M.E. asur, azure—O.F. azur, 
azure. 


Badius.—Bay-coloured; like a bay horse in 
colour. (L. badius.) 


Balancers.—The poisers or halteres (Owen). 
(M.E.) 


Bald.—A_ portion of the surface devoid of hair 
when the rest is hairy. (C.) M.E. balled; the 
orig. sense was “shining, white”; E. ball, a 
white-faced horse—Gael, and Irish, bal, ball, 
a white spot or streak. 


Barbate.—When an opening (as the mouth) 1s 
surrounded by long hairs. (L. barba, a beard.) 


Barbate.—(Antenne) Bearded, covered with 
short and thick-set hair completely upon one 


side. (L. barba.) 


Base.—(Wing.) The narrow attachment of the 
wing to the thoracic segment. (F.—L.— Gr.) 
M.E. bas.—F. base—lL. basis——Gr. base, a 
pedestal, base, step. 


21 Bic 


Base.—That portion whereby it is affixed to the 
body ; the root or bottom upon which an organ 
stands. 


Basiconie sensille.—Upright conical club-like 
sense-hairs which are immovable at the base, 
while the chitinous investment is very thin. 
(Berlese.) (L. basis, conicus, and from sensus, 
the sense.) 

Basilaire.—Straus’ term for the Jugulum. (L. 
basilaris, from basis.) 

Basilar membrane.—A thin fenestrate membrane 
separating the cones and rods from the optic 
tract. (From Base, and L. membrana.) 

Basis.—-The base, the whole lower part of the theca, 
from the mouth to as far as the labella. (L.) 

‘‘ Battledore Seales.” —A term given to one of the 
numerous varieties of spinules. (M.E. batyl- 
doure, Provincial batedor. [The corruption to 
battledore was due to confusion with battle, vb. 
to fight] and M.K. scale.) 

Belly.—(A.8. belg, belig, a bulge, a belly.) See 
Venter. 

Bi-.—Latin prefix, signifying two, or twofold. 

Biarticulate-—Having two joints. (L. bi, and 
artus, a joint.) 

Bicarinate.—Having two longitudinal elevated 
lines. (LL. b2, and carina, a keel.) 

Bicaudate.— Possessing two tails or processes. The 
term is generally applied to the wings of Lepi- 


doptera when so formed. (L. bi, and cauda, 
a tail.) 


Bic 


bo 


2 


Bicornute.—Two horned. (L. bz, and cornu, a 
horn.) 


Bicuspidate.—Ending in two points. (L. bz, and 
cuspis, a point.) 


Bifarious.—Pointing in two ways, in opposite 
directions. (L.) 


Bifasciate.—Furnished with two coloured bands. 
(L. bi, and fascia, a band.) 


Bifida.—(Lingula). Having a deep notch down the 
centre. (L. bifidus, cleft into two parts.) 


Biflabellate.—(Antenne). Doubly flabellate, 7.e. 
when both sides of the joints of the antenne 
send forth flabellate processes. (L. bz, and 
fabellum, a fan.) 


Bifurcate.—(Antenne). Composed of two joints, 
of which the apical one is bent double and 
attached by its centre to the second joint. 
(L. be, and furca, a fork.) 


Bifurcate, Bifurcated, Bifurcous.—Two jointed ; 
forked, into two joints. (I. bz, and furca.) 
Bijugum.—In two pairs. L. be, and jugum, a 

yoke.) 
Bilamellar.—Divided into two lamine. (L. bi, 
and lamina, a plate.) 


Bilineate.—Marked with two lines. (L. be, and 


linea, a line.) 


Bilobed.—With two lobes; two-lobed. (L. ly, 
and Gr. lobos, a lobe of the ear.) 


ye Bla 


Binate.—Consisting of a single pair. (From L. 
binus, twofold; L. bz, double.) 


Bipartite.—Divided into two parts to the base, as 
a leaf (see Partite). (L. be, and partite, with 
proper division.) 


Bipectinate (duplicato-pectinate).—Doubly pectinate 
(L. bz, and pecten, a comb.) 


Bipupillate.—When the ocellvs has two pupils or 
spots of colour; possessing two pupils of 
different colour. (L. bi, and pupilla, a pupil.) 


Biradiate-—Consisting of two rays. (L. bi, and 
radius, a ray.) 


Biserrate.—Doubly serrate. (L. bi, and_ serra, 
a saw.) 


Bisetous.—Furnished with two setaceous appen- 
dages. (L. bi, and seta, a bristle.) 


Bivalve.—(Proboscis.) Consisting of two valves 
or divisions united, so forming a tube. (L. bi, 
and valva, a valve.) 


Blade.—(Lacinia). The extreme portion of the 
maxille. (A.S. blade, a leaf.) 


Blastoderm.—The germ-skin; the germinal 
membrane which lies immediately beneath the 
membrana vitelli of the ovum. (Gr. blastos, a 
germ, and derma, skin.) 


Blastodermie cells—The cells forming the 
blastoderm. (L, blastos, derma; and _ cella, 
from celo, to hide.) 


Bla 24 


Blastula.—The stage of development of the egg ; 
a hollow bag with a cellular envelope formed by 
the nuclei moving towards the margin of the 
egg, where they arrange themselves in a layer 
surrounding the yoke, their masses of protoplasm 
become marked off into distinct cells and a cell- 
layer, and the blastoderm is thus formed internal 
to the yoke membrane. (Gr. blastos, a germ.) 


Blind ocel/uws.—-An eye of colour without any pupil. 
(A.S. blind. +- Du. blind, to become dim, and 


ocellus.) 


Blood-gills.—Delicate anal tubular processes into 
which the blood flows, and which do not asa rule 
contain trachee, though occasionally very fine 
tracheal branches are to be seen in trichopterous 
larvee. (Muller.) (A.S. blod, ++ Du. bloed ; 
and M.E. gille.) 


Boreal.—Of, or belonging to the north. (Step.) 
(From Gr. and L. boreas, the north wind.) 


Botryoidal.—Clustered like a bunch of grapes. 
(Gr. botrys, a bunch of grapes, and ezdos, like.) 


Bound.—(Pupe). (F. borne, to restrain, limit.) 
See Pupie contignie. 

Bouton.—The ladle-like organ situated at the 
apex of the lingua in the higher Apide. (Ff. 
button.) 

Brachelytrous.—Possessing short elytra. (Gr. 


brachys, short, and elytron, a wing case.) 


Brachial nervures.—The nerves of the anterior or 
front wing, which originate at the thorax and 
run parallel with the interior edge, towards the 


25 Bru 
posterior angle (or edge). (F. brachial—L. 
brachialvs, of, or belonging tothe arm ; brachium, 
the arm.) 


Brain.—The supracesophageal ganglion. (A.S. 
See bregen.) Encephalum. 


Breast.—The part of the thorax analogous to the 
breast of vertebrates. (M.E. brest, breest. 
A.S. breost. + Icel. brjost.) See Pectus. 

Brevate. Breves.—(Antenne). The term is used 
when the antenne are about the length of the 
head. (L. brevis, short.) 

Breviorate. Breviores.—(Antenne). The term is 
used when the antenne are longer than the head, 
and shorter than the body. (L. brevior, short.) 

Brevissimate. Brevissime.—(Antennee). The term 
is used when the antenne are shorter than the 
head. (L. brevissimus, short.) 

Broken.—(A.S. brucan?). Sce Fractie. 

Bronze.—The colour of old brass. (F. bronze.— 
Ital. bronzo ; bronzino, made of brass (z=ds). 
—L. es  Brundusinum.—L.  Brundusium, 
Brindisi (in Italy) where bronze mirrors were 
made.) 

Bronzus.—Bronze-coloured. (F.—Ital.—hL. see 
Bronze.) 

Brosse.—Brush ; the brush often found upon the 
mola, formed of short, stiff hairs. (Fr. brosse, 


a brush.) 


Brunneus.—Brown ; chestnut-coloured. Evidently 
a bastard compound. (Low L. brown.) 


Brush.—|[See Brosse. ] 


Bru 26 


Brushes.—The bunches of stout hairs situated one 
on each side of the anterior end of the head of 
the Culicids larvee. (From F. brosse, a brush.) 


Brushes.—The tufts of more or less dense hair, seen 
in the larve of Culicide, situated either round the 
fin-like processes of the abdominal segments, 
or round the respiratory siphon. (F. brosse.) 


Buccal.—Pertaining to the mouth. (L. bucca, the 
cheek.) 


Buccal cavity.—The cavity of the mouth. 


Buceate.—A head furnished with swollen cheeks. 
Caput buccatum. (L. bueca.) 


Budding.—The term often used to the peculiar 
agamic reproduction of Aphids. (M.E. budden, 
to bud.) 


Bulbus.—The bulb; the base of the scape, by which 
it inosculates in the torulus, often subglobose, 
and looking like a distinct joint. (L.) 


Bullate.—Blistered. (L. bidla, a bubble.) 


Bursa copulatrix.—An evagination of the vagina, 
into which the penis of the male is inserted in 
copulation. (In the Lepidoptera the bursa 
copulatrix is peculiar, in that it is not a simple 
evagination of the vagina, but a tube, open at 
both ends, one end leading into the vagina, 
the other into the surface of the body ; so that 
here the female genital organs have two pores, 
that into the bursa serving for copulation, 
whilst the vaginal opening proper allows only of 
the escape of the eggs.) (LL. bursa, a purse, and 
from copulare, to join.) 


27 Cal 


Caducus.—Shedding ; easily cast off. (L. cado, 
to fall.) 


Czeca.—Small purses or minor stomachs thrown off 
from the principal one. (L. c@cus, blind.) 
See Ceeca. 


Czeeal tubes.—Hight short blind tubes opening from 
the front end of the stomach, and being of 
similar structure to the stomach. (L. cecus, 


blind.) 


Ceruleus.—Pale blue, the colour of the sky. 
(L. azure blue.) 


Cesious.—Greenish, grey, sordid blue colour. 
(L. cesius, grey.) 

Ceesius.—Greyish-blue. (L.). 

Calathiform.—Bowl or _ basket-shaped. = (Gr. 
kalathos, a basket.) 

Calear. —A spur, spine, process ; plur. calcaria. (L.) 


Calearate, Calearated.—Armed with spurs; posses- 
sing a spur or spurs. (L. calcar, a spur.) 


Calearia.—The stiff spines with which the tibia are 
furnished. (L. calear.) 


Calceoliform.—Oblong in form with the middle 
somewhat coarctate. (L. calceolus, a slipper 
and forma.) 


Callose.—Furnished with callii. (L. callum, the 
hardened skin.) 


Callosity.—A hard thickening of the portion. 
(L. callosus, thick and hard.) 


Cal 28 


Callus.—A projection or elevation; plur. calil. 
(L. callus.) 


Callus metanoti lateralis——The lateral callosity 
of the metanotum of Diptera. (L.) 


Calx.—The heel; the curving part of the planta, 
by which it articulates with the tibia. (L.) 


Calyces.— Brain cups ; two elongate trough-shaped, 
cellular masses resting on the peduncles. 


(Gr. kalyx, a cup.) 


Calyculate.—D ouble-cupped, one cup placed within 
another. (From Gr. kaly«.) 


Calyx.—The top or head of the mushroom body, 
which is supported by the cauliculus and the 
peduncle or pedicel. (Gr. kalyx.) See Mush- 
room bodies. 


Campanulate.—(Antenne). Having _ bell-shaped 
joints, being concave at the broadest end. 
(Ital. campana, a bell.) 


Campodiform larva.—tIs elongate, with a broad 
quadrate head; three thoracic segments each 
bearing a pair of legs, and ten visible abdominal 
segments. The skin of the thoracic segments 
is almost chitinised. Each abdominal segment 
has a single strong chitinous tergal plate, and 
(as regards the first seven segments) seven ternal 
plates; the eighth segment has but three ventral 
plates, and the ninth only one, while the tenth is 
a truncated ‘anal cylinder.” The head bears 
appendages corresponding with those of the 
perfect insect; each antenna has but four joints, 


29 Cap 


the third carrying alongside the fourth a small 
papilla, which shows traces of segmentation and 
suggests the “ feeler ” was primitively branched. 
No compound eyes are present, only six simple 
ocelli at the base of each antenna. At the 
anal segment is a pair oflong cercopods, covered 
with nodules and stiff hairs. It is the typical 
grub of numerous Beetles, Stoneflies, May- 
flies, Dragon-flies, Lacewing-flies, ete. (Gr. 
campe, a caterpillar, and pous, a foot, and form.) 


Canaliculate—Furnished with one or more 
channelled furrows; elevated longitudinally 
with a concave line in the middle. (L. canalis, 
a channel.) 


Cancellated.—Crossed by lines running at right 
angles to each other. (L. cancelli, lattice-work.) 
Canine teeth.—{L. canis, a dog, and A.S. toth, a 


tooth.) See Dentes laniari. 


Canthus.—A corneous process, scen in some of the 
Coleoptera, originating at the clypeus, either 
completely or partially dividing the eyes. 
(Gr. the corner of the eye.) 

Canus.—The colour of grey hair. (L. hoary, grey.) 

Capillary.—Slender and hair-like. (L. capillus, 
hair, from caput.) 


CapilliHead hair; hair situated on the coruna 
of the head. (L. capillus, hair, from caput.) 


Capitate.— (Antenne). When the capitulum is 
abrupt and strongly marked. (Li. capvt.) 


Capitate.— Pertaining to the caput. (L. caput.) 


Cap 30 


Capitate (capitatze).—(Antenne). Having the 
terminal joint forming a club, or knob. (L. 
caput, head.) 

Capitate hairs.—Hairs knobbed at the apex. (L. 
caput; and A.S. her, hér, +- Du. haar.) 

Capitis cerebroida.—The first cerebroida. (L. caput, 
head, top, and cerebrum, brain.) 

Capitulum.—(Antenne). The knob; the last 
joints of the clavola when suddenly larger than 
the rest. (L. caput.) 

Capitulum compositum.—(Antenne.) (LL. caput, and 
convpositus, arranged, composed.) See Com- 
pound. 

Capitulum solidum.—(Antenne.) (L. caput, and 
solidus, solid, complete.) See Simple. 


Caput.—The head or first segment. (L. head, top.) 


Caput bueccatum.—(L. caput, and bucca, cheek.) 
See Buccate. 


Caput clypeatum.—(L. caput, and clypeus, a shield.) 
See Clypeat head. 

Caput turritum.—(L. caput, and turris, a tower). 
See Turreted. 

Caratothece.*—The antenne-cases, that portion 
of the theca enclosing the antenne. (Allied to 
Gr. keras, a horn, and theca, a case.) 

‘ Cardiac valvule.”—The term applied by Beaure- 
gard to the structure similar both in position and 
structure to the cesophageal valve (?). (Gr. 
kardia, the heart; and L. valvula, a little 
valve.) 

* Cerathece according to Kirby and Spence. 


3] Car 


Cardinales.—The rods joining the labium to the 
head. (L. cardo, a hinge.) 


Cardines.—T wo narrow joints each shghtly widened 
at the apex, which are portions of the cibarial 
apparatus of the Hymenoptera, and on the 
widened space of which the lora swing. (From 
L. cardo.) 


Cardo.—A basal ring lying at the seat of the 


stipites in the Hymenopterous genitalia. 
(Saunders.) (L.) 


Cardo.—The proximal joint of the protopodite. 
(L.) 


Cardo.—The hinge; the lowest of the first pair of 
pieces constituting the maxilla, it is narrow, thin 
and transverse, and articulates with the gula, 
forming a right angle with the stipes. (L. 
a hinge.) See Protopodite. 


Carina.—A keel. (L.) 


Carinal.—Keel-like, pertaining to the carina. 
(L. carina.) 


Carinate.—Having a longitudinal elevated line. 
(Bicarinate, Tricarinate, ete., have two or three 
such lines.) (L. carina). 


Carinatus.—The term used when the surface has 
elevated prominent lines and few in number. 
(L. carina.) 


Carnose, Carneous.—Flesh-like in substance. 
(L. caro, flesh.) 


Carpus.—The pterostigma. (L. carpus, wrist.) 


Car on 


Cartilaginous.—Resembling cartilage in structure, 
or appearance. (F.—L.  F. cartilage, gristle— 
L. cartilaginem, acc. of cartilago. Der. cartilagin- 
ous.) 


Cartilago ensiformis.—(F’. cartilage, and L. ensis, a 
sword, and form.) See Sternum collare. 


Castaneous.—Chestnut-coloured. (L. castane’, a 
chestnut). 


Cataphracted.— Possessing a hard skin, or with 
scales closely united. (Gr. kata, up and down, 
and phrasso, to shut in.) 


“ Cateh.”—A horny abdominal appendage of the 
Collembola (Tomocerus), generally situated on 
the ventral surface of the third abdominal 
segment, and is provided with only two 
segments, a basal portion, and two short arms, 
each being armed with four teeth on its outer 
margin. (F.—L. cachier, variant of O.F. 
chacier, to hunt, chase ; hence to catch.) 

Catenatus.—When the surface between impressed 
lines on the elytra, etc., is divided into oblong 
elevations, and is supposed to resemble a 
chain. (L. catena, a chain.) 


Cateniform, Catenulate.—Chain-like. (I. catena). 


Caterpillar.—The larva or eruca; the term is 
generally applied to the Lepidoptera. (From 
Eng. cates, food, and Fr. puller, to rob. A 
corruption of O.F. chattepelewse, a hairy cat ; 
primarily applied to the hairy caterpillar.) 

Cauda.—The tail, the posterior extremity. (L. 
tail.) 


33 Cel 


Caudad.—An abbreviated fcrm of caudally, or 
caudal. 


Caude, Caudule.—Tail like appendages.  (L.) 
Caudal.— Pertaining to the cauda. (L. cauda.) 


Caudal fan.—The fan of feathered bristles to be 
seen on the ninth abdominal segment of some 
aquatic (Anopheles) larvee. 


Caudal pro-legs.—Sucker feet attached to the caudal 
segment of larve. (L. cauda, and pro, and 


pedes.) 


Cauliculus.—Fibrous columns arising from the 
trabecula, and situated in front of the smaller 
peduncle. (Lb. cauliculus, dimin. of caulis, a 
stalk, stem.) See Mushroom Bodies. 


Cellula analis.—The term used to differentiate the 
hindermost basal cell of the wing correctly 
when the posterior basal transverse vein 
assumes the character of a longitudinal vein, and 
runs to the border of the wing, causing the 
hindermost basal cell to join the border of the 
wing. (L.) 


Cellulz.—The divisions into which membranaceous 
wings are divided by the nervures. (L. cella, 
from celo to hide.) 


Cellule axillares.—The Cellule spuriz. (L.) 


Cellule basales.—The basal cells of the wing, three 
in number; the first belonging to the middle 
of the wing, reaching as far as the transverse 
vein ; the second belongs to the first section of 
the posterior part of the wing, extending as far 


Cel 34 


as the anterior basal transverse vein; and the 
third belongs to the second section of the 
posterior part of the wing, and joins the posterior 
basal transverse vein. (Loew.) (L.) 


Cellule costales.—The cells belonging to the first 
or costal section of the wing. (Loew.) (L.) 


Cellula discoidalis—The discoidal or discal cell 
of the wing, belonging to the first section of the 
posterior part of the wing, and extending from 
the anterior basal transverse vein to the posterior 
transverse, and bearing on its anterior margin 
a small transverse vein. (Loew.)  (L.) 


Cellule marginales.—The cells belonging to the 
second or marginal section of the wing. (Loew.) 


(L.) 


Cellule posteriores.—The posterior cells, belonging 
to the two first sections of the posterior part 
of the wing. (L.) 


Cellulee spurie#.—tThe false cells, belonging to the 
third section of the posterior part of the wing ; 
they are not usually completely separated from 
each other. (L.) 


Cellule submarginales.—The cells belonging to the 
third or submarginal section of the wing. (Loew.) 
(L.) 

Cellule: ternatz.—Another term for the basal cells. 
(L.) 


Central Body.—The only single or unpaired organ 
of the brain. A median commissural system 
(Deitl.), It is formed of a yery fine and close 


35 Cer 


fibrillar web, situated on the median line and 
united with the cerebral lobes. (Viallanes.) 
(From Gr. kentron, and A.S. bodig + O.H.G. 
potach.) 


Central region.—(Wing.) See Costal region ; 
another term for the central region of the wing 
is the discus. (L. centralis, pertaining to the 
centre, from centrum, the centre, and regio, 
region.) 

Centris.—The sting; the last inflated joint of the 
tail. (Gr. kenteo, to prick.) 


Pertaining to the head. (Gr. kephalikos.) 


Cephalic. 


Cephalophragma.—A Y-shaped partition that 
divides the head internally into two chambers, 
an anterior and posterior; seen in Locusta, 
Leech. (Gr. kephale, the head, and phragma, 
an enclosure.) 


Cephalotheca.—Head-case; the anterior hemi- 
spherical division of the theca, enclosing the 
head of the future perfect insect. (Gr. kephale, 
and theca, a case,) 


Cerathece.—The antenne-cases. (Gr. keras, a 
horn, and theca.) See Caratothece. 


Cerci.—Hair. (L.) 


Cercopeda.—tThe pair of anal cerci appended to the 
tenth abdominal segment, and which are gener- 
ally regarded as true abdominal legs. (Packard). 
(Gr. kerkos, a tail, and pous, a foot.) 


Cercopods.—Spindle shaped limbs of sixteen seg- 
ments. (Gr. kerkos, and pous.) 


Cer 36 


Cerebral ganglion.—The nervous system of insects 
is characterised by the great size which the 
cerebral ganglion attains. The most anterior 
of the ventral series, the subcesophageal, is 
situated in the head, like the cerebral ganglion, 
and gives off branches to the mouth-parts. 
This 1s succeeded by three single or paired 
ganglia, one for each thoracic segment, and 
lastly by a series of abdominal ganglia. Often, 
however, Some of these fuse; the second and 
third thoracics may for instance ; the posterior 
abdominals also, or the second and_ third 
thoracics and all the abdominal ganglia may 
unite to form a single mass, which, in extreme 
cases, includes also the first thoracic ganglion. 
(Boas.) (L. cerebrum, brain, and ganglion.) 


Cerebroide.—The knots in which the diffused 
brain of insects is centred. Capitis cerebroida. 
(L. cerebrum, brain.) 


Cerebellum.—Generally a cordiform or longitudinal 
ganglion ; it hes at the base of the skull, between 
the two projecting ridges of the internal 
skeleton of the head, and is entirely covered by 
the tentorium. The nerves which pass from the 
cerebellum are the nervi mandibularum, the nervi 
macilarum, and the nervi lab (Burmeister.) 
(L. a little brain.) 


Cerebrum.—A nervous cord of a yellowish-white 
colour, lying transversely across the cesophagus, 
generally forming two ganglia. Its entire 
circumference is covered with a thin transparent 
membrane, which loosely surrounds it. The 


37 Che 


nerves which pass from the cerebrum are the 
nervt antennarum and the nervi oculorum. 
(Burmeister). (L. brain.) 


Cereous.—Wakx like. (L. from cera, wax.) 


Cernuous.—Bent ; the apex bent downwards. 
(LL. drooping.) 


Cervical sclerites.—The eight chitinous plates 


strengthening the neck. (L. cervix, the neck, and 
Gr. skeleros, hard.) 


Cervinus.—Fawn-coloured, grey, with a reddish- 
brown tint. (From L. cervus, a stag.) 


Cespitose.—Matted together. (L. cespes, turf.) 


Chalybeous.—Steel-like in colour, the metallic 
blue of steel. (Gr. chalyps, steel). 


Champagne-cork Organs.—(Forel.) (Champagne 
the province of France from where such wine 
is made, ‘a plain”; and alcorque, O.Span., 
allied to Arab. al-cornoque, the cork-tree. 
Span. corcho, and Gr. ergon, a work.) See 
Ampullaceous sensille. 


Cheek.—The Gena. (A.S. ceace.) 


Chela.—The terminal portion of a “ foot,” with a 
movable lateral claw, like that of a crab. (Gr. 
chele, a claw.) 


Chelate.—Possessing a moveable lateral claw like 
that of a crab. Possessing a chela. (Gr. 


chele.) 


Cheliform.—Pincer-shaped. (Gr. chele, and forma, 
form, shape.) 


Chi 38 


Chiasma.—The central body of nervous matter 
formed by the junction and decussation of the 
optic nerves. (Gr. chiasma, the mark of a x 
(chi) or cross.) 


Chitin.—The hard shell-like outer skin of arthropods 
and hard cased insects. The chemical formula 
of Chitin is C,,H,,N,O,,.. (Gr. chiton, a tunic.) 


Chitinous.—Pertaining to the chitin. (Gr. chiton.) 


Chordotonal Organs.—Compact, spindle-shaped 
groups of sensilla, each consisting of a chitin- 
secreting gland and a nerve cell, hung between 
two points of the cuticle, or between the cuticle 
and some internal organ. These sensille are 
connected with nerve fibres and believed to 
receive and transmit sound vibrations. (From 
Gr. chorde, an intestine, a cord; L. chorda, a 
cord.) 

Chorion.—The shell of the egg; the firm chitinous 
outer layer of the egg (see Ovaries). (Gr.) 
Chromatin.—The thread-like material which 
appears netted and looped, situated in the 
nucleus. See Achromatin. (From Gr. chroma, 

colour.) 


Chrysalis. The quiescent state the larva assumes 


when full fed. Generally applied to Lepidoptera. 
(Gr. chrysos, gold.) 


‘Chylific Stomach.”—The mid-intestine. (Gr. 
chylos, juice, from cheo, to flow ; and stomachos.) 


Cibarial apparatus——The organs which operate 
upon the food brought to the mouth. (LL. 
cibus, food ; and ad, and paro, to prepare.) 


39 Cir 


Cibarious.—Relating to food. (L. czbus.) 

Cicatricose.—Having elevated spots of a different 
colour from the rest of the surface, resembling 
scars. (IL. cicatriv, a scar.) 

Cicatrix—A large scar or scar-like impression. 
(L.) 

Cilia.—Hairs (cerci). (L.) 

Ciliate.—Fringed with hair ; set with parallel hairs. 
(L. erlia.) 

Cimicine.—(Scent). A smell like that of the 
Bed-bug. (LL. cimex, a bug.) 

Cinereus.—The blue-grey colour of ashes. (L. 
from cinis, ashes). 


Cingula.—A coloured band. (L. cingula, a belt, 
girdle, girth.) 

Cingulate.—A term used when the abdomen, or 
thorax, is wholly surrounded by one or more 
cingula. (L. cengvla.) 


Cinnamomeus. —The colour of cinnamon. (L. 
cinnamomum.) 


Cireinal, Circinate——Spirally rolled inwards, and 
downwards. (L. circinus, compasses.) 


Cireum.—A Latin prefix signifving around, about, 
on all sides, in a circle. 


Circumgenital glands.— Circular spinnerets disposed 
in groups around the genital orifice. (L. czre.m, 
genitalis, and glans.) 


Cirrose.—Furnished with a fringe of hair, possessing 
(cirri) fringes. (L. cérrus, a curl of hair.) 


Cir 40 


Cirrate—(Antennee.) When the branches of a 
pectinate antenna are very long and curled, 
and sometimes, but not always, fringed with 
hair. (L. cirratus, having curled hair, fringed.) 

Cirrus.—A curled lock of hair upon a thin stalk; 
a fringe. (L.) 

Claspers.—Processes of the male genitalia for 
holding the female during sexua! union. (A.S. 
clyppan, to embrace.) 


Clathrate.—Latticed. (L. clathrus, a lattice.) 


Clava.—The knob or club of the antenne. (L. 
clava, a club.) 


Clavate-—Knobbed ;_ clubbed; knob-like.  (L. 


clava.) 


Clavigerate.—(Antenne.) Terminating ina gradual 
club. (L. claviger, that bears a club.) 


Clavola.—The club shaped end of antenne, taking 
the terminating joints collectively. The 
remaining joints of the antenne taken together. 
It includes the Capitulum. (From L. clava, 
a club.) 


Clavus.--The hard part of the fore-wing next to 
the scutellum of the mesonotum when the wings 
are closed. (L. nail.) 


Clavus.—The narrow strip of the elytra, which lies 
at the side of the scutellum, of the Hemiptera- 
Heteroptera. (Saunders.) (L.) 

Clypeate Head.—When the head is tolerably flat, 
and the margin of the clypeus and the front are 
broad and flat. Caput clypeatum. (L. elypeus, 
a shield.) 


4] Coa 


Clypeiform.—Shield-shaped. (L. clypeus, and form.) 


Clypeo-labral nerve.—The nerve which innervates 
both the clypeusand labrum, originating with the 
arched nerve as a single trunk from the base of 
the cura cerebri; progressing down to the 
clypeus and labrum, where it splits into various 
branches. 


Clypeus.—Portion of the front of the face about the 
labrum ; the portion of the skull immediately 
covering the mouth; the portion of the face 
between the labrum and the encephalum. 


(L. a shield.) 
Clypeus, anterior.—[See Anti-clypeus. ] 
Clypeus, posterior.—[See Post-clypeus. | 


Co.—A Latin prefix, signifying together; used 
for con—(—cum), together, before a vowel. 


Coadunate.—Joined together at the base. 
(Klytra.) Permanently united at the suture. 
(L. co, for con-,=cum, together; and from 
adiuare, to assist,—L. ad-, to; invare, to help.) 


Coalite.—When parts usually separate are distin- 
guished neither by incisure, segment, nor suture. 
(From L. coalesco, to grow together.) 


Coalite stilt-prolegs—When stilt prolegs unite to 
form only one leg, bifidat itsapex. (L. coalesco, 
M.E. stilte,—Swed. stylta, Dan. stylte, a stilt ; 
and L. propedes.) 


Coarctate.—Contracted ; compact. (L. co, and 
arcto, to compress.) 


Coa 49 


Coarctate.—(Pup). (L. co, and arcto). See 
Pupz obtecte. 


Cocardes.—Retractile vesicular bodies on each side 
of the stethidium of insects of the genus 
Malachius. 


Coccineus.—Scarlet ; a bright or pale red colour. 
The colour of the blossom of the geranium. 
(L. of a scarlet colour.) 


Cochineal.—A valuable dye from an insect found in 
Mexico (cocinilide). Red. (L. coccinus.) 


Cochleate.—Twisted spirally like a screw. (L. 
cochlea, a snail or spiral screw.) 


Cocoon.—The protecting case formed by the larva 
for the situation of its pupa. (Kirby.) (F. 
cocon.) See Incunabulum. 


Ceca, also Ceca—Small purses or minor stomachs 
thrown off from the principal one. (L. caeci's, 
blind.) See Stomach. 


Ceeloconic sensilla.—Club-like sense hairs which lie 
horizontally and which are more or less enclosed 
in an elongated cavity in the chitinous integu- 
ment. Both the shape and cellular structure 
of the hair is essentially the same asthe basiconic 
sensillee, the difference being the basiconic are 
upright, while the ceeloconic are horizontally 
placed on the surface. (Berlese.) (From Gr. 
koilia, the belly, and konos, a cone.) 


Coenogonous.—Oviparous at one season of the year, 
and ovoviviparous at another. 


Col.—A Latin prefix. See Con. 


43 Col 


Coleoptera.—A family of hexapoda, the beetle 
tribe, an order of insects having elytra which 
serve as a covering and protection for the true 
wings. (Gr. koleos, a sheath, and pteron, a 
wing.) 


Collare.*—The collar, the short corneous cylindrical 
tube formed by the occiput being drawn out. 
(L. a collar.) 


Collaterial Glands.—Two much branched and con- 
voluted tubular organs situated behind the 
bursa copulatrix, and partly resting under the 
fifth abdominal ganglion. (L. collaterals ; 
co-con ; lateralis, pertaining to the side.) 


Colleterial glands.—Glands in the females of certain 
insects which secrete a glutinous substance 
which fastens the ova together. (L. colleteri(um).) 


Colleterium.—The colleterial glands. (Mod. Lat. 
colleterium, of, or pertaining to the colleterium 
of insects.) 


Collembola.—An order of Apterous insects, now 
united with Thysanura under the order Aptera. 
(Gr. kolla, glue, and embole, a throwing or putting 
in, so called because they have an organ enabling 
them to fasten to the part upon which they are 
standing.) 


Colligate-—Fixed to any part so as to have no 
separate motion of its own. (L. colligo, to bind 
together.) 


* Klug, Kirby and Spence, apply this term to the prothorax 
of the Hymenoptera. 


Col 44 


Collum.—The neck; the constricted posterior part 
of a pedunculate head, by which it inosculates 
in the trunk. It includes the Nucha, Gula, and 
Myoglyphides. (L). 


Colon.—The approximate anterior portion of the 
rectum. (Gr. a limb, a member.) 


Columnar. Tapering to one end like the shaft of a 
column. (L. columna, a column.) 


Com.—A Latin prefix (See Con.) 


Comate.— When the upper part of the head or vertex 
alone is covered with long hairs. (LL. comatus, 
having hair.) 


Comate.—When very long flexible hairs thickly 
cover a space on the surface. (L. comatus, 
having hair.) 


Comate.—Hairy. 


Combs.—The fine hairs situated upon the upper 
surface of each maxilla of the Culicide larve, 
and which serve to clean the Brushes. (See 
Brushes.) (A.S. camb., + Du. kam, Icel. kambr, 
Dan., Swed. kam.) 


Combs.—Three, sometimes four (?) strong curved 
hairs, situated on the free anterior border of 
each mandible of the Culicide larvee, and which 
serve to clean the Brushes. (See Brushes.) 


Commensal.—An animal living with or off another, 
without being parasitical. (L. com, and mensa, 
a table.) 


45 Com 


Commensals.—The term given to those insects 
which inhabit galls not made by themselves, 
but do not interfere with the host (species of 
Cetonia, Balaninus, etc.). (L. com, and mensa.) 


Commissura.—A joint in the costal nerve of the 
wings of Coleoptera, where they bend to take 
a transverse fold. (L. a joint.) 


Common.—Common to two. When a spot, for 
instance, is partly on one elytrum and partly 
on another. (From L. communis, common.) 


Comose.—Terminating in a tuft of hair or brush- 
like body ; comate. (L. coma, hair.) 


Complanate.—A convex or irregular surface, having 
a plane slight depression. (From L. complano, 
to level.) 


Complete.—Perfect ; entire; finished. (L. com, 
and pleo, to fill.) 


Complete metamorphosis.—-When there is a quies- 
cent or sealed-pupal stage in the life history 
of an insect. When histolysis does take place. 


Complicate.—Having longitudinal folds. (L. coin, 
and plico, to fold.) 


Compostius.—Compound ; the term given to the 
gullet when it has a lon g pear-shaped cell opening 
from it, and extending beneath the stomach 
and intestines, yet having no communication 
with either; this is the case in all flies and gnats 
which feed on blood, and many of the same tribes 
which subsist on other fluids ; the blood sucked 
is at once received into it, and allowed to slowly 


Com 46 


return to the gullet as required, to pass ultimately 
to the stomach for digestion. (L. composed, 
arranged, made up.) 


Compound.—(Antenne). The term used in contra- 
distinction to Simple, when a capitate antenna 
is so formed by several joints. (L. compono, 
to set together.) See Simple. 


Compound.—(Motion.) When capable of both 
vertical and horizontal motion. (L. compono, 
to set together.) 


Compound Ocellus.—When the eye of colour consists 
of three or more circles of colour. (L. compono, 
and ocellus, an eye.) 


Compound Eyes (Oculi)—The two large many 
faceted eyes placed on each side of the head of 
insects, besides which they may also possess 
simple eyes (ocelli). Compound eyes consist of 
numerous hexagonal facets, the lenses of which 
combine the characters of both crystalline and 
vitreous humours. See Oculi. 


Compressed.—Flattened by lateral pressure, as 
opposed to depressed. (L. com, and pressum, 
to press.) 

Con.—A Latin prefix, denoting with. (L. cum, 
with.) 


Concealed.—(Head.) When it is entirely with- 
drawn within the thorax, or is covered above 
by the thoracic plate. (IL. con, and cedo, to hide.) 


Concolorous.—Uniform in colour in comparison 
of the parts. (L. concolor, of the same colour.) 


AT Con 


- Conduplicate——Doubled or folded together. (L. 
con, duo, two, and plico, to fold.) 


Cone.—(Eye.) A simple transparent crystalline 
body formed out of “ cone-cells,” and found 
in the internal structure of the eye of insects. 
(Gr, konos, a cone.) 


Confluent.—Running into one another. (L. con, 
and fluo, fluxum, to flow.) 


Congenital Variation.—Variation due to inherited 
influence. (L. con, and genitus, part. of grgno, 
to beget.) 


Congested.—Heaped together. (L. con, and gero, 
gestum, to bear.) 


Conglobate gland.—An elongate gland situated 
below the ejaculatory duct at its hinder end. 
The function is unknown. (From L. conglobo, 
to conglobate.) 


Conglomerate.—Congregated. (L. con, and glomus, 
a clew.) 


Conic, Conical.—Tapering like a cone from base to 
apex; cone-like. (L. conicus.) 

Conic.—(Kgg.) Conical, cone-shaped. (L. conicus.) 

Conical.—(Pupz.) (L. conicus). See Pupe conice. 


Conjugate.—Consisting of a single pair. (F. 
conjugal.—lL. coniugalis ; L. conjugatio, binding 
together in pairs.) 

Connate.—Soldered together. (L. con, and natus 
born.) 


Con 48 


Connectives.—Small thin cords connecting portions 
of the nervous system,—venerally ganglia. (L, 
con, and necto, to tie.) 


Connexivum.—The flat, reflexed or vertical border 
of the abdomen, to be seen in the Heteroptera. 
It is caused by sections of the abdomen enlarging 
to form a lateral margin. (From L. connesus, 
pa. par. of connecto, to join.) 


Connivent.—The meeting of two lines so as to form 
an angle; convergent. (L. connivens, pr. par. 
of connivo, to wink.) 


Consperse.—Thickly sprinkled with minute irregular 
dots often confluent. (From L. con, fully, and 
spargo, sparsum, to scatter.) 


Consute.—Having very minute elevations in a 
series, at some distance from each other, of a 
different colour from the rest of the surface, and 
somewhat resembling stitching. (L. con, and 
suo, to sew.) 


Contiguous.—Adjoining ; touching; near. (L. 
contigu-us, that may be touched, near; with 
suffix -ous.—L. con- (cum), with, and tag, as 
in tac-tus, p.p. of tangere, to touch. 


Contiguous.—When spots, puncta, granules, etc., 
are so close that they almost or altogether touch 
each other. (See above for Der.) 


Contorted.— Twisted ; incumbent upon each other 
in an oblique direction. (L. con, and torqueo, 
tortum, to twist.) 


49 Cor 


Convoluta.—(lacinia). The haustellum — rolled 
up below the head like the spring of a watch 
(L. convoluto, to roll.) 


Convoluted.— Rolled together, or one part upon 
another. (From L. convoluto.) 


Co-type.—(L. co. and Gr. typos, an impression, from 
typto, to strike.) See Syntype. 

Coprophagus.—Feeding on excrement. (G. kopros, 
dung, and phago, to eat.) 

Corbicula.—The fringe of hairs situated on the 
tibie. (L.) 


Corbiculate.—Furnished with a brush of stout 
hairs. (L. corbicula.) 


Corcula.—The reservoirs in the dorsal channel 
through which the blood flows; a longitudinal 
series of little hearts, which receive blood by 
lateral apertures from the cavities of the body. 
(From L. cor, the heart, or corculum, a little 
heart.) 


Cordate, Cordiform, Cordatum.—Heart-shaped. 
Ovate and hollowed out at the base, without 
posterior angles. (I. cor, the heart, and form.) 


Coriaceze.—{Proale.) When composed of a tough 
substance which bends without breaking, but 
never folds. (From L. coriceus, concerned with 
leather.) 


Coriaceous.—Leather-like in substance. (L. 
coriaceus, from corium, leather.) 


Coriaria.—(Lacinia). Long, leathery and flexible 
(L. coriwm.) 


Cor 50 


Corium.—The corneous or coraceous parts of the 
Hemelytra. (L. leather.) 


Cornea.—The strong transparent skin of the eye, 
through which the rays of light pass. (L. 
corneus, horny, from cornu, a horn.) 


Cornea facets.—The divisions of the compound eye. 
(L. cornu, and facies.) 


Corneate.—Horned. (L. cornu, a horn.) 


Corneous.—Horn-like in substance; horny. (L. 
from corn.) 


Cornicle.—A short blunt horn, or rounded pro- 
tuberance. (L. corniculum, dimin. of corny, a 
horn.) 


Cornicles, nectaries or siphuncles.—Horny adjuncts 
to the sixth abdominal segment of Aphides 
(Linn.), which constitute the sheaths of certain 
excretory ducts, the delicate walls of which 
traverse their interior. They rise from the 
dorsal surface into more or less long moveable 
erect tubes, which may be either straight, curved, 
or vasiform. 


Corniform.—Horn-shaped ; long, mucronate, or 
pointed. (L. corny, and form.) 


Corium.—The whole of the elytra, lying outside the 
clavus, and bounded at the apex by the 
membrane, of the Hemiptera-Heteroptera. 
(Saunders.) (L. the hide, rind, skin.) 


Cornutus.—Horned ; in the form of a horn. (L. 
cornutus, horned, from corny, a horn.) 


51 Cos 


Coronate.—(Egs.) Surrounded at the superior 
extremity with a circle of strong spines, for the 
reception of another egg, whereby they hang 
together. (LL. corona, a crown.) 


Coronet.—An ellipsoidal ridge, seen in the puparia 
of the males of Lecaniinae. (L. corona.) 


Coronula.—A coronet, or semi-coronet of spines. 
(L. corona.) 


Corpus.—The body; the whole crust of the insect ; 
consisting of the exoderma or external covering, 
and the esoderma or internal cuticle, which 
lines it. (I. body.) 


Costa.—A longitudinal raised rib. (LL. a rib.) 


Costa.—(Wing.) ‘The outer margin of the wing 
when it is outspread. (L. costa, a rib.) 


Costal.—Pertaining to the costa. (L. costa.) 


Costal cell (cellula costalis), Costal area (area 
costalis). That part of the wing lying between 
the anterior margin and the costal nervure. 
If the cell is divided by minor nervures—the 
costal cells or cellule costales. (L. costa, a rib, 
and ared.) 


Costal nervure (nervura costalis).—The first principal 
nerve of the wing, it is the strong nervure which 
runs along the upper edge of each wing, either 
on the extreme edge or just below it. (L. costa, 
and Gr. neuron, a nerve.) 


Costal region (regio costalis),—The wings of insects 


present a somewhat triangular figure; the 
upper portion or side of this figure is called the 


5 


Cos 52 


costal region ; the outer portion or side, the 
exterior region ; the lower portion or side, the 
inferior region, and the central portion, the 
central region. These regions have no precise 
or definite limits, but are somewhat vague and 
ideal. (L. costa, and from regio.) 


Costalis (cellula and nervura).—tThe cell or nervure 
nearest the upper margin of each wing. (From 
L. costa.) 


Costate.—Furnished with coste,—longitudinal 
raised ribs. (L. costa.) 


Costate.—(Egg.) Provided with short ribs, extend- 
ing from pole to pole. (L. costa.) 


Costiform.—In the form of coste. (I. costa and 
forma, form.) 


Cotyloid Cavities—The Acetabula ; the cavities in 
which the coxee move and with which they form 
a ball-and-socket joint. (Gr. kotule, a cup, and 
eidos, form; and L. cavitas, a hollow, from 
cavus, hollow.) 


Coxa.—-The hip, or first jot of the leg, connecting 
the subsequent joints of the leg to the body at 
the thorax. (L.) 


Coxal.—Pertaining to the coxa. 


Coxal Glands.—Coxal scent-glands, usually in the 
form of evaginable hypodermal pouches. (L. 
coxa, the hip, and glans.) 


Cranium. The carneous covering of the head ; the 
skull. (Gr. kranion, the skull, and L. cranium.) 


53 Cri 


Crateriform.—Resembling the typical calathiform, 
but not so broad or wide. (L. cratera, a bowl, 
and form, shape, form.) 


Cremaster.—The apex of the last segment of the 
abdomen. (Gr. kremaster, a suspender.) 


Cremaster.—The stout, triangular, flattened, ter- 
minal spine of the abdomen, which aids the pupa 
in working its way out of the earth, when the 
pupa is subterranean. (Packard.) 

The anal hooks by which many pupz suspend 
themselves, (Kirby and Spence.) (Gr. 
kremaster.) 


Crenate, Crenulate.—Furnished with small blunt 
teeth, which take the form of segments of small 
circles. (I. crena, a notch.) 


Crepera.—A gleam of paler colour upon a dark 
ground. (Li. creper, obscure.) 


Crepuscle, Crepuscule.—Twilight. (L. crepusculum, 
a dimin. of creper, dusky.) 


Crepuscular.—Active during the twilight. (L. 
crepuscul (um). 


Cretaceous.—Chalky ; composed of or like chalk. 
(L. creta, chalk.) 


Cribellum.—A sieve-like plate which narrows 
anteriorily and opens as a small slit at the base 
and near the upper surface of the mandibles. 
(L. a small sieve, dimin. of cribrum, a sieve.) 


Crinite, Crinitus.—When very long flexible hairs 
thinly cover a space on the surface. (L. crinis, 


hair.) 


Cri 54 


Crisp.—(Margin.) When the dimb is disproport- 
tionally larger than the disc so as to render the 
margin uneven with irregular rise and fall. 
(L. crispus. curled.) 


Cristate.--Having one or two very elevated lines 
usually crenate. Crested, tufted. (I. cristatus, 
tufted.) 


Croceus.— Yellow, like the blossom of the crocus. 
(I. and Gr. yellow, saffron.) 


Crop.—A thin walled sac situated in the thorax, 
and part of the abdomen, and when present is 
an enlargement of the end of the cesophagus, and 
lined internally with a muscular coat. (A.S. 
cropp, top, the caw.) 

Cross nerve.—(M.E. cros, from Icel.  kross, 
adopted from O. Irish cros.—L. cruc-em, acc. 
of crux, a cross; and Gr. neuron, a nerve.) 
See Subcesophageal commissure. 

Cruciate. —Divided to the middle into four opposite 
arms, the angles being either four right ones, or 
two obtuse and two acute; cruciform. (L. 
cruciatus, crucified, to put in the form of a cross, 
from crucio.) 


Cruciform.—In the form of a cross, cross-shaped. 
(L. crua (genit, crucis) a cross, and forma, shape.) 


Crusta.—The shell of a crustacean. (L. crusta, 
the crust, the hard surface of a body.) 


Crustacea.—A class of the articulata, including 
lobsters, shrimps, and wood-lice, so called from 
the crust-like shell which covers the body and 
legs, (L. crusta, the hard surface of the body.) 


Ol 


3) Cue 


Crustacez.—(Proale.) When composed of a hard, 
brittle substance which neither bends nor folds 
without imjury. (See Coriaceze in contra- 
distinction.) (L. crusta.)’ 


Crustaceous.—Rigid and calcareous in substance. 
(L. crusta.) 


Crystalline.—Transparent like crystal. The white 
transparent splendour of crystal. (From Gr. 
krystallos, ice, and from kryos, icy cold.) 


Cubital-cellule-—The portion of the wing between 
the radial-cellure and the nerve which originates 
near the extremity of the cubitus. 


Cubital nervure.—The nervure situated between 
the median and anal nervures of the wing. 
(L.. cubitus, a bend, and Gr. neuron.) 


Cubitus.—The second nervure of the exterior 
margin of the wing, extending from the base to 
the carpus. (L. cubitus.) 


Cubitus.—The area lying between the anal area 
and media of the wing. 


Cucullate, Cucullated.—Hooded, cone-shaped. 
(L. cucullatus, hooded.) 


Cucullus.—A hood, a cone-shaped covering. (L. a 
hood.) 


Cucumiform.—Cucumber-shaped in form. The 
longitudinal section is oblong, and the transverse 
circular. (the 6. is excrescent ; M.E. cxcumer 
—L. cucumerem, ace, of cucumis, a cucumber ; 
and forma.) 


Cul 56 


Cultelli.—The * knives”; the upper pair of instru- 
ments of suction, representing the mandibule 
of a perfect mouth. (h. eulter, a knife.) 


Culus.—The orifice at the end of the anus. (L. the 
fundament.) 


Cultrate.—Coulter-shaped, straight on one side, and 
curved on the other. (I. culter, a knife, coulter 
of a plough. ) 


Cum.—Latin ; with. 


Cuneate, Cuneatum, Cuniform.— Wedge-shaped. 
(LL. cuneus, a wedge.) 


Cuneus.—The external-apical angle of the corium 
when separated off, as in the Capside, Cimicide, 
etc. (Saunders.) (L. a wedge.) 


Cuniform.—Wedge-shaped ; whose vertical section 
is cuneate, and horizontal parallelogrammic. 
(L. cwneus and forma, form.) 


Cupreus.—Coppery, bright coppery colour. 
(L. cwprum.) 

Cupule. —A small cup-shaped organ on the end of 
the tarsi of certain male insects, and used as 


suckers. (A.S. cuppe, a cup.—Late L. cuppa, 
variant of L. cupa, a tub, in Late L., a drinking 


vessel.) 


Cupuliferous.—Bearing cupules. (For Der. see 
above, and L. fero, to bear.) 


Cupuliform.—Cup-shaped. (L. cwpula, a little tub, 
a cup, dimin. of cupa, a tub; and forma, form.) 


57 Cya 


Cura Cerebri.—Two large nerve cords connecting 
the supra- and sub-cesophageal ganglia and 
with them forming the c@sophageal ring. (L. 
cura, care, from caro, to take care for; and 
cerebrum.) 

Cureumbitate.—(Hgg.) Melon-shaped. (Apparently 
derived from the name of the turmeric plant 
curcuma longa, of Kast Indian origin.) 

Cursorial.—Adapted for running. (L. curso, are, 
to run.) 

Cursory. Formed forrunning. (Low L. cursorius, 
from L. cursor, a runner, from cursus, pa. par. 
of curro, to run.) 

Cuspidate.—Sharply pointed; having a sharp- 
point like a spear. (L. cuspis, a point). 

Cuspidal.—Pointed ; ending ina point. (LL. cuspis.) 

Cutellate.—Knife-like. (Scand, M.E. cutten, a 
weak verb, to cut. Of Scand. origin, bui the 
traces of it are few. -++Swed, kotta, to cut. 
kuta, kata, to cut with a small knife.) 


Cutella.—A knife. (L.) 


Cuticle.—The skin, or covering of the body. 


(Derma, Dermis.) (L. cuticula, dimin. of cutis, 
skin.) 


Cuticula.—The cuticle. (L.) 
Cuticular.—Pertaining to the cuticle. (LL. cutis.) 
Cutting teeth.—[See Dentes incisivi.] 
Cyaneous.—Tinged with blue. (L.) 
Cyaneus.—Bright blue. (L.) 


Cya 58 


-Cyathiform..—Cup-shaped, (the mouth being wider 
than in Cupuliform). More or less obconical 
and concave in shape. (Mod. L. cyathiformis, 
from L. cyathus, a cup ; and forma, shape, form.) 

Cyclolabia.—The term applied to the shorter forms 
of forceps of the Forficulidee (Karwigs) when 
these organs are of variable length. (Burr.) 
(Gr. kuklos, a circle, and L. labia, a lip [?]). 

Cydariform.—Globose, but truncate at two opposite 
sides. 

Cylindraceous.—Cylindrica]. (Gr. kylindros, a 
roller.) 

Cylindrate.—(Egg.) Cylindrical, shaped like a 
cylinder. (Gr. kylindros, a roller.) 

Cymbiform.—Boat-shaped ; navicular. (L. cymba, 
a boat, a skiff.) 

Cytotheca.—(Gr. kutos, the skin, and theca, a case.) 
See Thoracotheca. 

De.—A Latin prefix signifymg Cown, or away 
from. It sometimes negatives and sometimes 
intensifies the sense. 


Deaurate.—A metallic hue, which appears as if 
the gilding was worn off. (From L. deauro, 
to gild.) 

Decaton.—The tenth segment of insects. (From 
L. decem, ten.) 


Deciduous.—Falling off easily. (L. de, down, and 
cadere, to fall.) 


Declivous.—Gradually sloping. (L. de, and 
cliuus, a slope.) 


59 Den 


Decolorate-—When the colour appears to be 
discharged from any part. (L. decolor, faced.) 


Decrepitant.—Crackling (Say). (L. de, and 
crepitus, noise [crepare, to crackle.]). 


Decumbent.—Bending downwards; upright at 
the base, and bending down at the tip. (From 
L. decumbo, to lie down.) 


Decurved.—Bent downwards.—(L. de, and curvus, 
bent.) 


Decurrent.—Closely attached to and running down 
another body. (L. de, and curro, to run.) 


Decussated.—Arranged in pairs which alternately 
cross each other. (L. decusso, to cross.) 


Deflexed.—Bent down. (L. de, and fecto, fleaum, to 
bend.) 


Dehiscent.—Gaping apart towards the apex. 
(L. dehisco, to gape.) 

Deltoid.— Triangular spear-shaped; (Say). (Gr. 
deltoeides, triangular: delta, a triangle, e7dos, 
like.) 

Demi-.—A prefix signifying half. (F.) 

Demidiate.—Half round. (L. dimidiivm, ace. 
half.) 


Dendroid.—Shrub-like, having the appearance of 
a little tree. (Gr. dendron, a tree, and eidos, 
like.) 

Dentate.—Toothed; furnished with  tooth-like 
prominences. (From L. dentatys, toothed.) 


Den 60 


Dentate-serrate.—Tooth-serrated; the denticula- 
tions being themselves serrated on their edges. 


Dentate-sinuate-—When the denticulations are 
sinuate. 

Dentes.—Teeth ; the pointed processes situated 
on the inner side of the mandibule. (L. dens, 
a tooth.) 


Dentes incisivi—Cutting teeth; superior, com- 
pressed, sharp-edged processes situated on the 
inner side of the mandibule. (L. dens, and 
incido, to cut into.) 


Dentes laniarii, canina.—Canine teeth ; when the 
cutting teeth are very sharp and _ conical. 
(L. dens, and canis, a dog.) 


Dentes molares.—Grinding teeth; are the inferior 
thicker teeth on the mandibule, and which are 
provided with a broad grinding surface. (L. 
dens, and molo, grind.) 


Denticulate.—(Diminutive of dentate.) Furnished 
with small teeth. The term is used loosely. 
(From dens, a tooth.) 


Denuded, Denudated.—Destitute of covering. 
(Wings.) Without hairs or scales. (L. denudo, 
to make bare.) 

Deorsum.—(Direction.) Downwards. (L.) 

Dependent.—Hanging down. (L. dependo, to 
hang down.) 

Depressed.—Flattened as if by pressure from 
above ; often used as in opposition to ‘“ com- 
pressed ”’—flattened by lateral pressure. (L. 
deprimo, depressum, to press down.) 


61 Did 


Depressors.— Wing muscles, attached to the wing- 
root, outside the fulcrum. (L. deprimo, depressum.) 


Derma, Dermis.—The cuticle or skin. (Gr. derma, 
the skin, from dero, to flay.) 


Dermal.—Pertaining to the derma. 


Dermata.—(Pupa.) When the prior skin is 
retained, and no trace of the situation of limbs 
is visible. (Gr. derma, the skin.) 

Detonant.—Emitting a sudden noise. (L. de, and 
tono, to thunder.) 


Deuto.—From the Greek deuteros, second, and 
used as a prefix. 


Deutocerebree.—The second segment of the head, 
the antennal segment, whose appendages 
develop into feelers, appearing first behind the 
mouth, but moving as growth proceeds. (Gr. 
deuteros, second; and L. cerebrum, brain.) 


Deutocerebon.—The mid-brain, consisting of the 
olfactory nerve-centres. (Gr. deuteros, second ; 
and L. cerebrum, brain.) 


Di—A Greek prefix signifying double or two. 
(Gr. dis, twice.) 

Dia.—A Greek prefix signifying through. 

Diaphanous.—Transparent, but less purely than 
hyaline. (Gr. diaphanes.) See Pellucid. 


Dichotomous.—Dividing regularly into pairs. 
(Gr. dicha, in two parts, and temno, to cut.) 


Didymous.—When a pair of spots, etc., touch, or 
are confluent; twin. (Gr. didymos, twin.) 
See Geminous. 


Diff 62 


Diffracted.—Bending in different directions. (L. 
dis, apart, and frango, to break.) 

Diffuse.—Spreading. (L. diffundo, to pour abroad, 
from dis, away, and fundo, to pour.) 

Digitate——Widened and divided like the hand, if 
slender and elongate; if not slender and 
elongate the term ‘“‘ palmate” is used. (From 
L. digitus, a finger or toe.) 


a9 


Digitules.—Appendages usually present on the 
feet of the Coccide, either broadly dilated or 
in the form of knobbed hairs. (From L. digitts.) 

Digitus.—The toe or “ foot ” ; the remaining joints 
of the tarsus taken together. (L.) 

Dilatate—Disproportionably broad in part. (L. 
dilato, dilatus, to make broad.) 

Dilutus.—Pale in colour. (L. diluted.) 

Dimeious.—Composed of two pieces; in parts 
arranged in pairs. (Gr. di, and meros, a part.) 

Dimidiate fascia—A fascia traversing only half 
the wing. (lL. dimidium, the half, from dis, 
and medius, the middle; and fascia, a band.) 

Dimidius.—Half an inch. The term is universally 
used to indicate “ half the size.” (For example, 
dimidio minus, half as large; dimido majus, by 
one half larger; dimido latus, by one half 
broader, etc.) Inthe same way the comparative 
numerals are applied, triplex, quacriplex, 
etc. Thus, one third as large, triplo-minus ; 
three times as large, triplo-majus ; one-fourth 
as large, quadruplo-minus ; four times as large; 
quadruplo-majus. Quincuplex and sextuplex 
are seldom, if ever, used. (L.) 


63 Dis 


Dimorphic, Dimorphous.—Presenting two distinct 
types in the same sex. (Gr. di, and morphe, 
form.) 


Dioptrate.—Applied to an ocellate spot, of which 
the pupil is divided by a transverse line. 


Dioptrate ocellus—aA fenestrate ocellus divided by 
a transverse line. (From G. dia, through ; and 
optomar, to see.) 


Diptera——A family of hexapoca. An orcer of 
insects including the true flies, as the common 
house-fly, which possess only two wings and 
two halteres. (Gr. di, two, and pteron, a wing.) 


Dis.—A Latin prefix, denoting separation, a parting 
from; away ; and having therefore the force of 
a privative and negative. 


Dise.—The middle of the central portion. (L. 
discus.) 


Dise.—The centre of the superficies externa. 
(L. discus, and from caro, flesh.) 


Diseal cell—(Wing.) See Cellule discoidalis. 


Discoidal.—Pertaining to the disc; like the disc 
in form. (L. discus, and eidos, like.) 


Discoloured, Discolorate-—When the same part 
of an insect has different colours. For example, 
legs are called discoloured when the anterior 
are red and the posterior black. (L. dis and 
color, colour.) 


Discrete, Discreted.—The term used to show one 
part is well defined, or marked off from the other. 
(L. discretus, to separate.) 


Dis 64 


Disecus.—The central portion of the wing. (L. 
discus.) See Costal region. 


Discus of Maxilla—The disc or stalk of the 
maxilla, the second portion adjoming the 
insertion. (L. discus, and mazilla, the jaw.) 
See Insertion. 


Discussating.—Nerve fibres crossmg each other. 
(L. dis, and quatio, to shake.) 


Dispersed.—Having the surface markings resem- 
bling spots standing apart. (UL. dis, and spargo, 
sparsum, to scatter.) 


Dissilient.—Bursting open elastically. (L. dis, 
and salio, to leap.) 


Distant.—When parts are separated from each 
other by a suture, or incisure. (Fr. distant,— 
distans, pres. pt. of distare, to stand apart). 


Distant (ant. distantes)—(Antenne.)—The term 
used when the base of the antennz are placed 
very widely apart. (L. dis, and sto, to stand). 


Distichous (distichw)—(Antenne.) When the 
processes of a pectinate antenna originate from 
the apex of the joint, and do not incline at right 
angles to the sides, but bend forwards at acute 
angles. (From Gr. dis, twice, and __ stichos, 
a row.) 


Distinct.—When spots, puncta, granules, etc., co 
not touch, or run into each other, but are 
individually separate. (O.Fr.  distinct,—l. 
distinctus, distinguished.) 


65 Dor 


Divaricate.— Used of two parts that are contiguous 
at the base and very strongly dihescent ; 
forked, or parted into two branches. (L. dis, 
and varico, to straddle.) 


Divaricate—Standing out very wide. Forked or 
divided into two branches. Branching off so 
as to form an obtuse angle above and an acute 
angle below. (L. dis, and varico.) 


Diverticula.—A hollow appendage branching from 
the intestinal canal, and terminating in a cul 
de sac. (L. diverticulum, a by-road, or digression.) 


Dolabriform.—Hatchet-shaped.—Flat, with a 
prominent keel and cylindrical base. (L. 
dolabra, an axe, and forma, shape.) 


Dorsal.— Pertaining to the back, or upper surface. 
(From L. dorsum, the back.) 


Dorsal segments.— Transverse segments of the back, 
the sides of which often lap over and cover 
those of the ventral segments. (LL. dorsum, and 
seco, to cut.) 


Dorsal spiracles.—Lateral breathing pores seen in 
the dorsal segments, and which are often covered 
by the preceding segment. (LL. dorsum, and 
spiritus, breath, from spiro, to breathe.) 


Dorsal vessel.—A slender tube opening from the 
hindermost chamber of the heart, and running 
the length of the abdomen on the median line, 
being attached to the dorsal wall of the segments 
by several triangular muscles. (LL. dorsum, and 


M.E. vessel.) 


Dor 66 


Dorsolum.—That portion of the superior surface 
which lies between the collare and scutellum, 
upon which are found the pteropega. (L. from 
dorsum, the back.) 


ad . . . 
Dorsum.—The inner margin of a wing. (L.) 


Dorsum.—The back, or upper part of the body. 
(L.) 


Double ocel/us——When two eyes of colour are in- 
cluded in the same circle or spot. (L. duo, 
two, and plus, or plenvs, full, from pleo, to fill, 
and ocellus, a little eye.) 


Ductus ejaculatorius.—The ejaculatory duct. (L.) 


E.—A form of ex. (See Ex.) 


Eeailles.—The term Lacaze Duthier gives to the 
sting darts and sheath ofthe family Dasygastree 
or Gastrilegides, when they are prolonged 
laterally into curved sclerites. 


Ecalearate.—Without a spur, or horn. (L. e=ez, 
without, and calcar, a spur.) 


Ecaudate, Excaudate.—(Wing.) Destitute of tail- 
like processes. (L. e, without, and cada, a tail.) 


Eedysis.—The casting of the skin; moulting. 
(Gr. ekduo, to strip off.) 


Echinate-—When the dispersed elevations rise very 
high and are very thin. (From Gr. echinos, a 
hedgehog.) See Muricate. 


Echinatus.—When the surface is covered with 
pustules produced into spines. (Gr. echinos.) 
See Muricate. 


67 Ell 


Ectoderm, or Epiblast.—An outer layer of cells 
formed by the surface cells overgrowing the 
open edges of the invagination of the blastoderm. 
(Gr. ektos, outside, and derma, skin.) See 
Endoderm. 

Ectotrachea.—The outer or peritoneal membrane 
covering the trachez. (Gr. ektos, outside, and 
trachea.) 


Edentate.—Without teeth. (L. edentatus, tooth- 
less.) 


Edentulous.—Destitute of teeth. (L. edentatus.) 
Edge.—The Margin. (L. acies, edge.) See Acies, 
Egg.—Ovum. (Icel. egg. A.S. eg.) 


Egg-guide.—The moveable, triangular plate which 
bounds the oviduct on the ventral side ; especi- 
ally seen in Acrydiidee. (egg, and F. guider, to 
euide.) 

Ejaculatory duct (Ductus ejaculatorius)—The duct 
which ejects the spermatozoa, formed by the 
two sperm cells joining to form the tube. (L. e 
and jacio, jactum, to throw, and ductum, to 
lead.) 

Elastes.—The elastic organs on the ventral seg- 
ments which assist in the act of leaping. (Gr. 
elao, elaso, to drive or urge.) 


Elevators.—Wing muscles, attached to the lower 
region of the thorax-wall, and fixed to the wing- 
root inside the fulerum. (L. e, and Jevo, to rise, 
from Jevis, light.) 


Ellipticum.—Elliptical in surface shape. (Gr. 
elleipsis. ) 


Elo 68 


Elongate.—(Antenne.) In relation to the body ; 
the term is used when the antenne is the same 
length as the body. (L. e, and longus, long.) 


Elytra, Elytrum.—The wing cases; the fore-wings 
of Coleoptera. (Gr. elyo, to wrap up.) 


Em.—A form cf the English prefix en. 


Emarginate.——A piece cut out of the margin; 
notched. (L. e, and margo, the edge.) 


Embolium.—The latero-basal portion of the corium 
when separated off, as in the  cimicide. 
(Saunders.) (Gr. embolos, a wedge, a graft.) 


Embossed.—The sculpture “thrown up”; raised 
above the surface. (F.—L.and Gr. From Em-, 
prefix; and Boss. (boss, from F. bosse, a swelling), 
Or (F.—Late L.) O. Fr. embosquer, to shroud,— 
O.Fr. em- (L, 7), in.) 


Empodium.—The term used for the pulvilli according 
to the order of the insect. (L. em or im, in, 
and podium, a pedestal.) 


En.— A prefix representing the Greek en, signifying 
in, or, on; the Latin 2m, signifying in or into; 
or the Saxon em, signifying to make, to surround, 
or to intensify the meaning. 


Encephalum.—The brain of insects consists of 
two ganglia, one of which passes over the 
pharynx, and the other beneath it; both are 
connected by means of nervous cords, which 
run from the upper to the under, and which 
embrace the cesophagus. (Janet). (Gr. en, and 


kephale, the head.) 


69 Ent 


Edentulous.—Destitute of teeth. (From L. e. 
(ex), and dens, a tooth.) 


Endo.—A Greek prefix extensively used in scientific 
terms, signifying within (endon). 

Endoblast.—An inner layer formed by the invagin- 
ated cells of the invagination of the blastoderm. 
(From Gr. endon, within, and blastos, a growth 
or germ.) 


Endoderm, or hypoblast——The inner embryonic cell 
layer arising from two cell masses situated at 
either end of the embryo in the neighbourhood of 
the fore-gut and the hind-gut. (Gr. endon, and 
derma, the skin.) 


Endopodite.—The second part of the maxilla. 
(Gr. endon, within, and pous, from podos, foot.) 
See Stipes. 

Endoskeletal rods.—Apodemes. (Gr. endon, 
within, and Eng. skeleton.) 

Endotrachea.—The inner membrane lining the 
trachea, and which is a continuation of the 
cuticle of the integument. (Gr. endon and, 
trachea.) 

Ennaton.—The ninth segment in insects. (Gr. 
ennea, nine.) 

Ensate.—Gradually tapering till it ends in a point ; 
sword-like. (LL, ensis, a sword.) 

Ensiform.—Sword-shaped. (L. ensis, a sword, and 
forma, shape.) 

Entire-—Without excision, emargination, or pro- 
jection. (From O.F. entier, whole, L. integrum, 
whole, acc. of integer.) 


Ent 70 


Entomoline.—The name Lassaigne gave to chitin 
(Gr. entomon, an insect, and linon, thread 
[chitin*. ] 


Entomology.—The science which treats of insects ; 
a branch of Zoology. (Gr. entomon, an insect, 
and logos, science.) 


Entomophagous.—Insect-eating. (Gr. entomon, and 
phago, to eat.) 


Entothorax.—T he portion formed by the apodemes 
which pass up from the sternum. (Audouin.) 
(Gr. entos, within, and thoraz.) 


Ep, Epi.—A Greek prefix, signifying on, or upon. 


Epiblast—The outer layer of cells im an embryo. 
(Gr. ep2, and blastos, a bud.) See Ectoderm. 


Epicnemis.—An accessory joint at the base of the 
tibia in many Arachnida, which does not appear 
to have separate motion. (Gr. epz, on, and from 
nemo, to distribute). 


Epicranium.—The crown ; the dorsal and posterior 
surface of the head, from the front across tne 
vertex to the posterior cavity. (Gr. epi, on, 
and, kranium, the skull.) 


Epidermal, Epidermic, Epidermidal.— Pertaining 
to, like, or applied to the epidermis; covering 
the skin. (Gr. epi, on, and derma, the skin.) 


Epidermis.—The cuticle or outer skin. (Gr. epz, 
on, and derma.) 


* Cassell’s Encyclopedic. Dictionary, 1887, p. 344, par. 3. 


71 Epi 


Epididymis.—The convoluted mass of tubes com- 
prising some twenty folded bundles formed by 
the vas deferens. (Dufour.) (Gr. epi, upon, 
and didumos, a testicle.) 


Epigastrium.—The first entire ventral segment. 
It includes the Mucro, and Tympana. (Gr. 
epi, on, and gaster, the belly.) 


Epimera (sing. epimerum).—The “ flanks,” the 
point of union of the legs to the lower arcs of the 
segment formed by the pleurites. (Gr. epz, and 
meros, the thigh.) 


Epiopticon.—The second swelling of the optic 
tract. (Gr. epi, and optikos, pertaining to 
sight.) 


Epipharynx—A small valve situated under the 
Labrum, that in many Hymenoptera closes the 
Pharynx, and is an appendage of its upper 
margin. Synonymous with lingua. (Gr. epi, 
and pharnyx.) 

Epipleura.—The deflexed margin of the elytra 


immediately beneath the edge. (Gr. epi, and 
pleura.) 


Episternum.—The plate situated between the 
epimerum and sternum. (Gr. epi, and sternum, 
the breast.) 


Epistoma.—That part of the face between the 
front and labrum, equivalent to the anticlypeus. 
(Gr. ep?, and stoma, a mouth.) 


Epistomis.—Latreille’s term for the clypeus. (Gr. 
epi, and stoma.) 


Epu 72 


Epupillate.—An ocellate spot lacking a pupil. (L, 
e, and pupillus, the pupil.) 


Equate.—Without larger partial elevations or 
depressions. (L. @quus, equal, from Sans. 
eka, one.) 


Equitant.—Folded one upon the other. (L. 
equitans, riding.) 


Eroded.—({Edge.) Possessing irregular teeth and 
emarginations. Gnawed. (L. erodo, to gnaw 


off.) 


Erose.—Sinuate, with the sinuses cut out into 
smaller irregular notches, as if gnawed. (From 
L. e, and rodo, rosum, to gnaw.) 


Erosus.—Having the appearance of being gnawed, 
due to the irregularity of the incisions. (From 
L. rodo, rosum.) 


Erect.—Nearly vertical —(L, e, and rectus, straight.) 


Eruca.—Larva. (L. a caterpillar.) 


Eruciform Larva.—The soft-skinned worm-like 
grub which prevails among the most highly 
developed insects—moths, flies, ants, bees, ete. 
(L. eruca, and forma, model, and /arva, a mask.) 


Escutellatus—Without a scutellum. (L. e (ez), 
and sceutum, a shield.) 


Esoderma.—A fibrous cuticle lining the exoderma. 
(Gr. eso, within, and derma, the skin.) 


Eucone eyes.—Eyes which have the cones perfectly 
developed though they may vary much in form. 
(Gk. eu, well, and konos, a cone.) 


73 Exp 


Ex-.—A Latin prefix signifymg out, out of, pro- 
ceeding from, and sometimes beyond and not. 

Exarate——Having furrows with perpendicular 
margins. (L. ex, and arare, to plough.) 


Exaratus.—Sulcated. (L. ex, and aro, to plough.) 


Exarticulate—(Antenne). Having but one joint ; 
similarly biarticulate—two jointed ;__ tri- 
articulate—three-jointed, ete. (Ll. ex, and 
artus, a joint.) 


Excaudate, Ecaudate.—(Wing.) JDestitute of 
tail-like processes. (L. ex, and cauda, a tail.) 


Excind, Excindate-——When the end has an angular 
notch taken out. (L. ex, and, cw@si’m, to cut.) 


Excision.—A_ piece cut off, or out. (L ex, and 
cesum, to cut.) 


Excurved.—Curved outwards. (L. ex, and curvus, 
curved.) 


Exo.—A Greek prefix signifying on the outside, 
without. 


Exochorion.—{Embryol.)—The remains of the 
epithelium of the ovarian follicle. (L. ex, and 
chorion.) 

Exoderma.—The external covering, or skin.  (L. 
exo, and derma, skin.) 


Exopodite.—The third part of the maxillary palp— 
always three-jointed. (L. evo, and pous, podos, 
foot, and suff. ite.) 


Explanate.—Widened out, expanded. (L. ez, 
and planus, a plain.) 


Exs 74 


Exscalpate.—Having a variety of irregular longi- 
tudinal depressions. (I. ex, and scalpo, to cut.) 

Ex-scutellate—Having no scutellum. (L. ex, and 
scutum.) 

Exserted.—Protruded, opposed to inclosed. (L. 
exsero, to thrust out.) 

Exsertum.—(Head.) Thrust forth; free. (L. 
exsero.) See Free. 

Extensor Femoral.—One of the femoral muscles 
passing through the haunch and trochanter. 
(From L. extensor, and femur, femorus, the 
thigh.) 

Exterior Edge.—(Wing.) The edge of the wing 
extending from the base to the apex. (L. 
exterior, from exter, on the outside, and M.E. 
egge, edge.) 

Exterior Margin.—(Wing.) The exterior edge. 
(L. exterior, and margo, the margin.) 


Exterior Palpii—The maxillary palpi. (L. exterior, 
and palp, the lip.) 

Exterior Region.—(regio exterior)—(Wing.) (L. 
exterior, and regio, a region.) See Costal region. 

External Chiasma.—The chiasmatic fibres of the 


external medullary mass. (L. externus, and Gr. 
chiasma, the mark of a y (ch) or cross.) 


External Medullary Mass.—The second swelling 
of the optic tract, the epiopticon.) 


External Ovipositor (ovipositor  exertus.)—(L. 
externus, external; ovum, an egg, and positum, 
to place.) See Ovipositor. 


5 Fac 


External Paramera.—The whole group (except the 
internal paramera) of the genital appendages 
of the male :—the stipites, volsellee, and laciniz. 


(Verhoff and Emery.) 


Extra.—A Latin prefix denoting outside of ; beyond 
usual; in excess. 


Extra-ocular (ant. extra-ccularis)—{Antenne.) 
Placed very distant from the eyes ; inserted on 
the outside of the eyes. (LL. extra, and oculus, the 


the eye.) 


Extrorsum.—(Direction.) Outwards. (L. estror- 
sus, from extra, without.) 


Exuvia, 2.—Cast-off skin. (L.) 


Eye of Colour.—The term of comparison between 
the ocelus—the true eye, and the ocellus—the 
eye of colour, so frequently seen upon the wings 


of Lepidoptera. (M.E. eye, eighe). 


Facets.—The lenses or divisions of the eyes—The 
eyes are said to be coarsely or finely facetted 
according to the number and size of these. (Fr. 
facette). 


Facetted Eye.—The compound eye. 


Facies.—General aspect of a species, genus, or 
group of insects. (L. facies, aspect.) 


Facies.—The face ; the upper surface of the head, 
it includes all the parts that lie between its 
junction with the prothorax and the labrum ; 
viz., nasus, postnasus, frons, occiput, gene, 
tempora, oculi, stemmata, and  antenne. 
(L. facies, face.) 


Fal 76 


Faleata.—({Lacinia.) Acute and bent over towards 
the opposite lacinia; sickle-shaped. (L. falcatus, 
form falx, falcis, a sickle.) 

Faleate.—Resembling a sickle. (L. falcatus.) 

Faleiform.—(Mandibul). When long and curved 
in the form of a sickle. (L. falz, and forma, 
form.) 

Fallopian Tubes.—See oviduct. (The name 
Fallopian tubes is so called after an Italian 
anatomist, Fallopius, mistakenly regarded as 
the discoverer.) 

Farinose.—Pertaining to a mealy appearance. 
(From L. farina, meal.) 

Fascia.—A coloured band. A broad transverse 
band. (L. fascia, a band.) 


Fascia.—A broad transverse stripe ; a stripe, which 
is broader than a line. (L. fascia.) 


Fasciatus, Fasciate—Having a broad transverse 
stripe. (From L. fascia.) 


Fascicle, Fascicule—A bundle of long hair. (L. 
fasciculus.) 


Fasciculate—(Antenne.) Every joint possessing 
a distinct pencle, or long hair. (From L. 
fasciculus, a little bundle.) 

Fasiculate.— Possessing fasicules. (L, fasciculus.) 

Fastigiate.—Flat-topped; equal in height. (L. 
/astigvatus.) 

Fat Cells.—Large masses filling out all the spaces 
between the viscera. They are filled with fat 


globules, and are of mesodermal origin. (A.S. 
fat, and L. cella, a cell.) 


17 Fem 


Fatiscent.—Spontaneously mouldering and falling 
to piecesin the air. (Say.) (L. fatisco, to gape 
open.) 


Fauna.— Animals indigenous to any region or period, 
as protected by the fauns. (L. fauwnus, from 
faun,—faveo, to favour.) 


Favose.—Resembling honey-comb. (L. /favus, 
honey-comb.) 


Fecundation.—The act of impregnation. (From L. 
fecundo, to make fruitful.) 


Feet.—Organs of locomotion situated beneath the 
body. (Say.) (A.S. fet, sing. fot.) 


Female pronucleus.—The nucleus of the egg-cell. 
(L, femina, a woman, and pro, and nucleus, 
from nux, a nut.) 


Femoris caput.—The head of the femur (L. femur, 
femoris, and caput, head.) See Femur. 


Femoris scapus.—(L. femur, femoris, and scapus, 
a shaft.) See Femur. 


Femoris trochanter.—(L. femur, femoris, and Gr. 
trochanter, a runner.) See Femur. 


Femur.—The thigh, a long stout joint, connected 
anteriorally with the trochanter, and posteriorally 
with the tibia, it possesses free movement, and is 
composed of three pieces the separation of which 
is marked by strong sutural lines, these are 
called the first, second, and third joints of the 
femur—/femoris caput ; femoris trochanter, and 
femoris scapus. When two parts only are dis- 


Fen 78 


cernible, they are the second and third parts; 
when only one, it is the third part, and is alone 
called the thigh, or femur. (L. femur, femoris, 


the thigh.) 


Fenestre.—Two white patches situated at the 
inner side of the antenne. (L. fenestra, a 
window.) 


Fenestrate ocellus—When the eye of colour has a 
transparent spot. (L. fenestra, and ocellvs, an 


eye.) 
Fenestrate——An epithet applied to transparent 
spots on the wings of insects. (L. fenestra.) 


Fenestrated.—Marked with, or having, transparent 
spots, surrounded by a carker colour. (L. 
fenestra.) 


Ferreous.—Metallic grey of polished iron. (L. 
ferrum, iron.) 


Ferruginous.—Pertaining to a rust-red colour. 
(L. ferrum.) 

Fetid.—(Scent.) A disagreeable smell. (L. /et- 
idus, stinking.) 


Fila.—Threads. (I. filum, a thread.) 


Filaceous.— Possessing file. (L. filum.) 


Filate-——(Margin.) When the edge is separated 
by a channel, often producing a very thin 
thread-like margin. (L. filum.) 


Filiate, Filiform.— T hread-like in appearance. (L. 
filum.) 


79 Fla 


Filiform.—(Antenne.) Uniform throughout, like 
athread. (I. filum.) 

Filippi’s Glands.—Two whitish lobated masses in 
the labium on each side of the common duct of 
the spinning gland of larve. (Blanc.). 

Outgrowths of the spinning gland provided 
with peculiar excretory cells, or evaginations of 
the entire glandular epithelium. (Packard.) 

Fimbria.—A fringe; an ornamental appendage 
to a border; something resembling a fringe. 
(Ti) 

Fimbriate. (Antenne.)—Setaceous, and each 
joint furnished with a single hair on the side. 
(From L. fimbria.) 


Fimbriate.—Fringed with hair of irregular length. 
(L. fimbria.) 


Fissate.—(Surface.) Appearing as if broken. (L. 
fissum, to cleave.) 

Fissure.—A crevice. (L. fissura.) 

Fistula.—The intermediate subquadrangular pipe, 
formed by the union of the two branches of the 
Antlia, which conveys the nectar to the pharynx. 
(LL, fistula, a pipe.) 

Fistular.—Hollow, applied to a hollow cylinder. 
(L. a pipe.) 

Flabellate, Flabelliform.—Fan-shaped, with the 
upper portion prolonged into long branches. 
Having long thin processes lying flat on each 
other like the folds of a fan. (L. flabellum, a 
fan.) 


Fla 80 


Flabellum.—A curious flattened, notched process 
which overhangs the base of certain thoracic 
hairs of some of the Culicidee larvee. (L. a fan.) 


Flagellate.—-Possessing flagella; possessing a 
flagellum. (L. flagellatus, pa. par. of flagello, to 
whip.) 


Flagelliform.—Resembling a flagellum ; whip-like ; 
whip-shaped. (L. flagelli, genit. of flagellum.) 


Flagellum.—The terminal portion of the antennz 
situated beyond the pedicellus ; the apex. (L.) 


Flagellum.—tThe joints of the antennee—the scape, 
or first, being excepted—of the Hymenoptera 
aculeata. (L.) 


Flasked-shaped_sensille.—Ampullaceous  sensille 
of an exaggerated form. The chitinous ampulla 
being greatly lengthened and attenuated to form 
a narrow sac enclosing the sense hair, and to 
connect by means of a slender tube with the 
integumental pore. 


Flavescent.—Being of a somewhat yellow colour. 
(L. flavus, yellow.) 


Flavo-virens.— Bright green, with yellow predomi- 
nating. (L. flavus, and virens, green.) 


Flavus.—Pure, clear vellow. (L. flavus.) 


Flegellum.—A whip-like appendage ; a whip-like 
bristle. (L. a whip.) 
Flexor femoral.—The second femoral muscle, 


attached within the outer face of the trochanter. 
(Li. flecum, to bend, and femur.) 


81 Foo 


Flexuous, Flexuose.—Almost zig-zag; winding ; 
wavering ; curving. (L. flecum, to bend.) 


Floats.—Four respiratory sacs situated, two on 
the thorax and two on the seventh segment of 
Culicidee (Corethra) larvee, which as they mature 
become filled with air, and serve as floats. 


(Theobald.) (A.S. flotian.) 


Floceculus.—A hairy or bristly appendage of the 
posterior apophysis in a few of the Hymenoptera. 
(Li. floccus, a flock, of wool.) 


Fluviatile-——Inhabiting rivers, as the larve of 
many insects. (L. fluviatilis, pertaining to 
rivers.) 


Fetid Glands.—(Orthoptera). Small _ sac-like 
glands the walls of which possess numerous 
hypodermal and glandular cells, provided with 
a passage through which the scent-fluid is forced 
by the pressure exerted by the dermal muscles. 
(Vosseler.) (L. f@teo, to stink.) 


Foliaceous.—Very thin, scarcely thicker than a 
leaf; leaf-like in appearance. (L. folium, a 
leaf.) 


Foliole.—Leaf-like appendages of the telum. (L. 
folium.) 


Follicle-—A small sac or bag. (L. folliculus.) 


Follicular.— Possessing or made up of follicles. (L. 
folliculus.) 


Folliculus.—(L. follis, a little bag.) See Incunabulum. 


Food-reservoir.—The “Sucking stomach.” (A.S. 
foda, and F. reservoir.) 


bo 


Foo 8 


“ Foot.’—The last part of the leg, the tarsus. 
(M.E. fot, foot, pl. fet, feet. A.S. fol, pl, fet.) 


See Tarsus. 


Foramen.—The orifice in the abdomen, through 
which the funiculus passes. (L. foro, to bore.) 


Foramen occipitale.—(L. foro, and occiput.) See 
Occipital foramen. 


Forceps.—Pinchers, organs for holding—the actual 
function is unknown. (L. forceps, pinchers.) 


Forcipated.—Resembling forceps; formed like a 
pair of pincers ; to open and close like forceps. 
(From I. forceps.) 


Fore-stomach.—The Proventriculus. (A.S. fore, 
before, and Gr. stomachos.) 


Forfex.—A pair of anal organs which open and shut 
transversely, and cross each other, like scissors. 
(L. forfex, a pair of shears.) 


Form.—Shape, form. (L. forma.) 


Fornicate.—Concave within and convex without. 
(L. fornicatus, from fornix, a vault.) 

Fossorial.—Adapted for digging, burrowing. (L. 
fossio, onis, a digging.) 


Fossulate.—Furnished with fossulets ; having long 
and narrow trench-like depressions. (L. fossa, 
@, a ditch.) 


Fossulet.—A somewhat long and narrow depression. 
(L. fossa.) 


Fovea, Foveolet——A large round depression on 
the surface. (L.) 


83 Fro 


Foveate, Foveolate-——Having deep depressions 
which narrow towards the bottom. Possessed 
of foveee. (L. fovea.) 


Fracte.—(Antenne.) Broken. (L. fractus, from 
frango, to break.) See Geniculate. 


Fractate.—({Antenne.) Having one joint, usually 
the second from the base, very long, and the 
remaining joints attached to it at an angle. 
Bent with an elbow as if broken. (L. fractus.) 


Free.—(Head.) When it is distinctly visible, 
never covered by the thorax. (M.E. fre; 


AS. freo, +, Ger. fret.) 


Free.—Unrestrained in articulated movement, not 
soldered at the point of contact. (H., M.E. /re ; 
AS. freo, +, Ger. frez.) 


Free Pupze.—Pupe which have the appendages and 
limbs free, and not fused to the outer case; 
for example, pupz of the beetles, lace-wing flies, 
caddis-flies, ants, wasps, and bees. (M.E. fre, 
and L. pupa. 


Frons.—The front, forehead, or brow; that portion 
of the head between the posterior margin of the 
clypeus between the eyes, to where the head 
commences to be flattened out. That part of 
the facies which lies behind the postnasus and 
usually between the posterior part of the eyes. 
The part of the skull between the orbits and the 
vertex. (L. frons, frontis, the forehead.) 


Front.—The fore-face, bounded by the eyes and 
the vertex, and often beneath by the epistoma 
or the clypeus. —(L. /rontzs.) 


Fro 84 


Frontal. (ant. frontalis)—(Antennee.) Inserted 
directly upon the brow. (L. frontale—front 
stem of frons.) 


Frontal area.—A small triangular space, marked off 
by sutural lines, lying just above the clypeus in 
the Hymenoptera Aculeata (ants). 


Frontal fissure.—The arcuate impressed line, seen 
in Diptera, immediately above the antennae, 
continuing over the face to the border of the 
mouth, 


Frontal ganglion——The  three-cornered _ nerve- 
centre of the three nerves running from the 
subcesophageal ganglion round the cesophagus 
and uniting above it. 


Frontal lunule—A small crescent-shaped piece above 
the antennze, which in the case of Cyclorrhaphais 
typically characteristic. 


Frontal nerve.—Arises from the anterior border of 
the frontal ganglion and extends into the 
clypeus, where it bifurcates. 


Frontal stripe.-—Sometimes termed witta frontalis ; 
the coloured stripe noticeable in some Diptera, 
on the middle of the frons. 


Frontal suture.—The suture separating the frontal 
lunule from that part of the head immediately 
above it. Frequently the suture extends down 
on either side to as far as the mouth. 


Fulerum.—The second part, constituting the legs 
of the Hemiptera, it inosculates anteriorly with 
the Coxa, and posteriorly with the thigh or 
Femur. (Douglas and Scott.) (L. a prop.) 


85 Fur 


Fulerum.—The tongue-bone. (L. fulcrum, a prop.) 
See Os hyoideum. 


Fulgid.—A bright, fiery red colour. (From L. 
fulgidus, shining, glittering.) 

Fuliginosus.—Soot-like in colour. (L.  fuligo, 
soot.) 


Fulvescent.—Shining-brown; of tawny lustre. 
(From L. fulvus.) 


Fulvid, Fulvous.—Tawny; of a tawny yellow; 
brownish-yellow, the yellow prevailing. (L. 
fulvus.) 


Fulvo-zeneous.—Brazen ; with a tinge of brownish 
yellow; (L. fulvus, tawny, and  aeneus, 
brazen.) 


Fumeus.—The colour of smoke. (L.) 


Funiculus.—(Antenne.) The joint of the antennz 
between the Scape and the Club. (L. funiculus, 
a cord.) 


Funiculus.—A small cartilaginous cord passing 
through a minute orafice of the post-foreenum 
just above the point where the petiolus is fixed 
to an opposite hole above it, which enables the 
insect to elevate or depress the abdomen. (L.) 


Fureate, Furcated.—Dividing into two. Forked. 
(L. furca, a fork.) 


Furred.—When short decumbent hairs thickly 
cover any space of the surface-—See Comate 
for contra-distinction. (F.— O.L.G.) M.E. 
forre—O.F. forre, fuerre, a sheath, a case, 
whence the verb forver, to line with fur.) 


Fus 86 


Fusco-testaceous.—Dull reddish brown on a hard 
background. (L. fuscus, swarthy, and testa, 
any earthen vessel; tile, brick; shell, animal 
shell, ete.) 


Fuscous.—Brown or tawny-brown; the colour of 
tanned leather; the colour of the otter; of a 
dark colour. (Li. fuscus, swarthy.) 


Fusi.—The spinners; organs consisting of two 
retractile pieces, issuing from the mammule, 
and rendering threads. (L. fusus, a spindle.) 


Fusiform, Fusiformate.—Spindle-shaped, broadest 
portion at the middle and narrowing towards 
the two points. (L. fusus, a spindle, and forma, 
shape.) 


Galea.—The outer portion of the endopodite. 
(L. galea, a helmet.) See Lobus Superior. 


Galeate.—Situated on the dorsal side of the 
maxille. (L. galea.) See Endopodite. 


Galla.—A plant gall. (LL. galla, a gall.) 


Galls.—Morbid enlargements of the affected parts 
of a plant, due to parasitic agency. They 
vary enormously in form and colour. (L. 
galla, a gall-nut.) 


Gangliform, Ganglioform.—Having the form of 
ganglion. (L. ganglion and forma.) 


Ganglion.—A nerve centre ; a healthy enlargement 
of anerve. (L.) 


Ganglion of Median nerve.—|See Median nerve. ] 


87 Gem 


Ganglion ventriculare.—The unpaired ganglion, 
situated in front of the proventriculus. The 
number of these ganglia varies in different orders 
of insects. 


Ganglionic Plate.—The Periopticon. 


Gasterotheca.—The abdomen-case, that portion of 
the theca enclosing the abdomen. (Gr. gaster, 
the belly, and theca, a case.) 


Gastric.—Belonging to the stomach. (Gr. gaster.) 


Gastro-ileal folds.—Twelve “dark spots” lying at 
the anterior end of the ileum; the boundary 
separating the intestine from the chylific 
stomach, and forming a peculiar valve. (Minot.) 
(From Gr. gaster, Jeo, and Dan. folde.) 


Gastrula.—The stage of the egg formed by the 
presence of the primitive streak, the invaginated 
blastoderm, the ectoderm and the endoblast. 
(From Gr. gaster.) 


Gastrula stage.—(Embryol.) The stage of em- 
briology, when the primitive streak invaginates 
to allow of the formation of the inner layer. 
(Gr. gaster.) 

Geminate.—Arranged in pairs; twin; disposed 
in pairs from the same point. (L. geminus, 
twin.) 


Geminous.—When spots, tubercles, puncta, etc., 
are geminate. (L. geminus.) 


Gemmiparous.—A sexual generation by new 
individuals, arising as buds from the body of the 
parent. (Li. geminus, and pario, to bring 
forth.) 


88 Gen_ 


Gena.—The cheek, the lateral part of the head 
just below the eyes. (L.) 


Geniculate.—Elbowed, or kneed ; having the joint 
a little bent. (LL. genu, the knee.) 


Genitalia.—The extended organs of reproduction. 
(L. genitalia, genitals.) 


Geometre.—Larvee which alternately elevate and 
straighten the middle of the body when walking, 
as those constituting the genus Geometra ; 
opposed to Rectigrade. (L. geometra, a land 
measurer.) 


Germarium.—The terminal portion of the ovariole. 
(F. germe, a young shoot, a sprout, from L. 
germen.) 


Germinal vesicle-——The female pronucleus con- 
tainng the germinal spot. (L.  germino, 
germinate, and versicula, a vesicle.) 


Gestation.—The period during which the female 
is maturing the ova or embryos. (L. gesto, to 
carry.) 


Gibbose, Gibbous.—Hump-backed, very convex. 
A term applied to the surface when it presents 
one or more large elevations. (L. gibbus, a 


hump.) 


Gills.—(Scand.) M.E. gille-—Dan. gielle, Swed. gal, 
a gill.) See Tracheal gills. 


Ginglymus.—Hinge-like articulation ; hinges. (Gr. 
ginglymus, a mortice-joint.) 


89 Gon 


Gizzard.—The proventriculus, the muscular stomach 
designed for crushing the food. (F.—L.) M.E. 
giser the (d being added).—O.F. gegier, jugier, 
juisier. (F. gésier).—L. gigerium, only in pl. 
gigeria. (Late L. gizeria), cooked entrails of 
poultry. The Stomach. See Stomach and 
Proventriculus. 


Glabrate.—Brilliantly glossy. (From L. glaber, 
smooth.) 


Glabrous.—Smooth, hairless, and without punctures 
and sculpture. (From L. gtaber.) 


Glassotheca.—The proboscis-case ; that portion of 
the theca enclosing the protruding proboscis 
often seen in the pup of Lepidoptera; the 
tongue-case. (A.S. gles, and Gr. theca, a case.) 


Glaucous.—Grey ;_ bluish-green; resembling the 
colour of the sea. (L. glaucus, grey; blue; 
sea-green.) 


Globate, Globose.—(Kge.) Perfectly globose, 
round in all directions; spherical. (L. globus, 
sphere, ball, etc.) 


Glochis.—A barbed point. (Gr.) 


Glossee.—The first lobes of the second maxille or 
labium. (Taken from L. glossa, a word needing 
explanation ; from Gr. the tongue ; the root is 
uncertain.) 


Gonapophyses.—Processes situated in the genital 
pouch of the female insect, which act as forceps 
for grasping the egg-capsule. (From Gr. gone, 
seed, physis, a genital power.) 


Gon 90 


Gonytheca.—The knee-pan; a cavity situated on 
the underside of the apex of the thigh, to receive 
the base of the tibia. (Probably from the 
Idg. related bases, which are genw (as in L.), 
gonu (as in Gr.), gneuw (whence Teut. kneu), 
the knee, and Gr. theca, a case.) 


Graminaceous.—Having the colour of grass. (L. 
gramen, grass.) 


Graminivorus.—Subsisting on grass, or vegetable 
food. (LL. gramen, and voro, to eat.) 


Granule.—A very minute elevation. (L. granulus.) 


Granular, Granulate-—With small rounded-off 
elevations. (From L. granulus.) 


Gressorial—Adapted for walking. (L. modified 
L. gressioius, from L. gressus, stepping.) 


Grinding teeth—See Dentes molares. (H.) A.S. 
grindan, p.t. grand, p.part. grunden. Allied to 
L. frendere, to gnash ; and L. dens, a tooth.) 


Griseus.—Of a grey colour; grizzled. (Fr. gris, 
gray.) 
Grossus.—Large, great in size, or bulk; wide; 


extensive; abundant; ample. (Fr. gros, from 
L. erassus, thick.) 


Guarded.—(Pupze.) See Pupze costodiatee. (From 
Fr. garder, and ward.) 


Gula.—The underside of the skull. The throat. 
(L. gula, the throat.) . 


Gular.—Pertaining to the throat. (L. gula.) 


91 Hai 


Gullet.—The cesophagus, that part of the alimen- 
tary canal which approaches the head, and the 
external opening of which is the throat, or 
pharynx. See Ventricosus, Compositus, and 
Simple. (L. gua, the throat.) 


Gustatory nerves.—Two thread-like nerves pro- 
jecting from the anterior border of the sub- 
cesophageal ganglion, which innervate the region 
of the salivary glands. (Krauss.)  (L. gusto, 
to taste.) 


Gutta.—A light spot upon a light ground, wz., 
white upon yellow; a roundish dot of colour, 
intermediate in size between an atom and a 
macula. (L. gutta, a spot.) 


Guttate.—Possessing guttz; painted with gutte. 
(ti. quita.) 


Gymnopterze..—Membranaceous and transparent 
wings without scales. (Gr. gymno, naked, and 
pleron, & wing.) 


Gyri cerebrales.—(Gr. gyros, a ring ; and cerebrum.) 
See Galyces. 


Habit, Habitus.—'Ihe aspect ; the general appear- 
ance. Used comparatively to express a resem- 
hlance in general appearance, apart from more 
important markings derived from organisation. 


(L. habitus.) 


Habitat, Habitation—The natural abode or 
locality. (L. habito, to dwell.) 


Hair-fields.—Spinules. (A.S. her, hér.) 


Hai 92 
Hair-seales.—Spinules. 


Halberd-shaped.—Triangular, hollowed out at the 
base and sides. (Gr. helm, and barte, an axe.) 


Halteres.—Two small knobbed appendages rising 
from each side of the thorax in the order Diptera 
just where the posterior pair of wings would 
arise were they present, and to which they are 
analogous. They tend to balance the insect in 
flight, and are sometimes termed the balancers, 
or poisers, or malleoli. (Gr. halteres, weights 
held in the hand to give impetus whilst leaping ; 
Gr. hallomai, to leap.) 


Hamule.—A small hook; having the end hooked. 
(L. hamus, hook.) 


Hamuli.—(L. hamus.) See Hooklets. 


Hamus.—‘ The Hook” ; a hook fixed to the base 
of the costal nerve on the underside of the 


wings. (L.) 


Harpes.—Teeth and ridges situated on the mner 
surface of the claspers. (Gr. harpe, a scimitar.) 


Hastate.—Halberd-shaped; triangular hollowed 
out at the base and sides with the posterior 
angles spreading. (L. hasta, a spear.) 


Hastate pupil.—When the pupil of an eye of colour 
is a halberd-shaped spot of colour. (L. hasta, 
and pupilla.) 


Hatching spines.—(Embryol.) A low conical 
spine, for the purpose of rupturing the egg- 
chorion, situated on the embryonal cuticle of 


93 Hem 


the head in advanced embryo. (Strongylosoma) 
Metschnikoff. These structures vary in 
situation and shape according to the insect. 
(M.E. hacchen, + Swed. hacka, to hatch; and 
L. spina.) 


Haustellate.—Pertaining to the haustellum; 
suctorial. (L. haustum, to draw up.) 


Haustellum.—A suctorial mouth, including the 
valvula, cultelli and scapella. (L. haustum, to 
drink, swallow, etc.) 


“ Heart.”—A straight chambered tube running 
along the middle line of the thorax and ab- 
domen under the chitinous covering. (A.S. 
hoerte.) 


Heels.—The term Leach uses for the spinul. 
(A.S8. hela.) 


Hemelytra.—The upper organs of flight, when they 
are corneous or coriaceous at the base, and 
membranous at the apex. (Gr. hemi, half, and 
and elytron, from elyo, to wrap up.) 


Hemi.—A Greek prefix, signifying half. 


Hemimetabolous.—The term given to insects 
which undergo an incomplete metamorphosis. 
(Gr. hemi, and metabole, change.) 


Hemiptera.—An order or group of hexapoda. An 
order of insects with four wings, the upper being 
partly coriacious, and partly membraneous. 
(Gr. hemi, half, and pteron, a wing.) 


Hemisphericum.—Hemispherical. (Gr. hemi, and 
sphaira, a ball.) See Semiglobosum. 


Hep 94 


Hepatic.—The colour of liver;  liver-brown. 
(L. hepaticus, diseased in the liver.) 


Hepatic czeca.—Convoluted club-shaped diverticula. 
(Gr. hepar, the liver, and L. cecus.) 


Heteromerous.—With the posterior tarsi composed 
of less joints than the anterior and intermediate 
ones. (Gr. heteros, another, and meros, a part.) 


Hexapoda.—A class of the articulata, including all 
insects possessing six legs or feet. (Gr. hea, six, 
and pous, foot.) 


Hexapoda.—Six legged. (Gr. hex, and ous.) 


Hexapodus.—Provided with six legs——(Gr. hex 
and ous.) 


Hieroglyphic.—Painted with characters somewhat 
resembling hieroglyphics. (Gr. hieros, sacred, 
and glypho, to carve.) 


Hind-intestine.—The tube lying between the mid- 
intestine (or stomach) and the outgrowths 
(urinary tubes) of the proctodzeum. It is lined 
with a thick muscular layer. (A.S. hinden, at 
the back of ; and L. intestinum.) 


Hirsute.—Set with thick long hairs. (L. hirsutus, 
hairy.) 
Hirsutus.—Covered with long shaggy hairs. (L.) 


Hirsutiusculus.—Somewhat hairy ; somewhat 
hairy at the base. (L. harsutus, and culus, the 
fundament.) 

Hispid.—Set with short erect bristles. (L. hispidus, 
shaggy.) 


95 Hol 


Histology.—The science which treats of the finer 
structure of the body-tissues. (Gr. histos, a 
tissue, and logos, science.) 


Histolysis.—The process of histology. (Gr. hesto, 
and Lyo.) 


Hoary.—Grey, with the white prevailing ; greyish- 
white, caused by very dense short hairs covering 
the surface. (A.S. has, hoarse, -+- Dan. has, 
Du. heesch.) 


Hoary.—[See Incanus.] (A.8.) 


Holometabolous.—The term given to insects which 
undergo a complete metamorphosis. (Gr. holos, 
whole, and metabole, change.) 


Holopneustic.—The term given to the open or 
normal type of tracheal system. This type is 
distinguished by the presence and function of 
stigmata. (Gr. holos, whole, and pneuma, air.) 


Holoptic.—Whole-eyed ; perfect eyed ; in the case 
of the eye of colour, it is holoptic when it is in a 
perfect state, 7.e., having one pupil surrounded 
by one ring of colour, andan Atmosphere. (Gr. 
holos, whole, and optikos, pertaining to the eye.) 


Holosericeous.—Covered with thick set shining, 
short decumbent hairs, resembling satin in 
sheen. (This kind of pubescence has usually 
been denominated sericeous (sericea), but it 
certainly does not resemble silk, and is different 
from the sericeous splendour.) (Gr. holos, and 
L. sericeus, silken.) 


Hom 96 


Homogeneous.— Forming a complete and mutually 
related whole ; of the same kind ; possessing a 
uniform nature, principle, composition, or 
structure. (Gr. homos, the same, and genos, 


kind.) 


Homotene.—Retaining the primitive form ; refer- 
ring to those articulated animals with legs, that 
do not change their form with their vernantia, 
or skin-casting. (From Gr. homos, the same.) 


Honey-dew.—The excretion of hypodermal 
unicellular glands which open into a modifica- 
tion of a pore-canal, the tubercles are an out- 
erowth of the cuticle. (A.S. hunig; and 
doew.) 

Hooklets. (hamuli).—Very minute hooks in the 
middle of the anterior margin of the wings 
by which the under-wing is made to work in 
unison with the upper one. (L. hamus, a hook.) 

Horizontal.—Parallel with the horizon. (From 
Gr. horos, a boundary.) 

Horizontal.—(Motion.) When it is from side to 
side. (Gr. horvos.) 

Horn.—A long process resembling a horn. (A.S. 
horn + Icel. Dan. Swed. Ger. horn.) 

Humeral.—Relating to the humerus. (L. humerus.) 

Humeral nerve or nervure. A transverse or cross 
nervure of the wing running from the costa to 
the sub-costa. (L. humerus.) 

Humerus.—The shoulder; the region of the 
exterior basal angle of the elytra. (Say). The 
anterior angles of the thorax in Diptera, 


(Meigen.) (L. the shoulder.) 


97 Hyp 


Hyaline.—Transparent ; water-like in hue. (Gr, 
hyalos, glass.) 


Hyaline.—Glossy. (Gr. hyalos.) 


Hybrid.—The offspring of two different species. 
(LL. hybrida.) 


Hymenoptera.—A group of hexapoda, an order of 
insects, like the bee, having four membranous 
wings. (Gr. hymen, a membrane, and pteron, 
a wing.) 


Hyper-—A Greek prefix signifying over, beyond, 
or excess. 


Hypermetamorphosis.—When an_ insect . passes 
through more than the three normal stages of 
metamorphosis. To explain this the example 
of the larva of the Oil Beetle is taken :—This 
campodiform larva lives an active life on plants 
until it attaches itself to a bee, which carries 
it to the hive, where it feeds on her eggs. 
After casting the skin it becomes a short-legged 
grub, and feeds on the honey. Another change 
of skin leads to a third stage, in which no food 
is taken, the jaws being immovable, and the 
legs reduced to tubercles. A third moult is 
succeeded by the fourth and final larval condi- 
tion ; the Oil Beetle grub being now a maggot 
resembling in appearance those of the bees, 
living and feeding on honey. (Gr. hyper, meta- 
morphosis, a transformation.) 


Hypistoma.—The hypopharynx. (Gr. hypo, and 
stomoma, the mouth.) 


Hyp 98 


Hypo.—A Greek prefix signifymg under, or 
beneath. 


Hypoblast.—(Gr. hypo, and blastos, a sprout.) 
See Endoderm. 


Hypochordria.—T wo portions of segments, one on 
each side; which in some genera (Carabus, 
Linn.) intervene between the first entire ventral 
segment, and the posterior part of the post- 
pectus. (Gr. hypo, and chorde, a cord.) 


Hypocrateriform.—Salver-shaped ; in the form of 
"a salver. 


Hypodermal.—Pertainmg to the hypodermis. 
(Gr. hypo, and derma, skin.) 


Hypodermie.—Under the skin.—(Gr. hypo, and 
derma.) 


Hypodermis.—The under skin. (Gr. hypo, under, 
and derma, the skin.) 


Hypopharynx.—A structure of variable shape and 
form, originating, as a rule, just above the base 
of the labium and stretching down the labial 
groove, closing ventrally the slit-like opening of 
the labrum—epipharynx. It is attached to the 
interior surface of the labrum. (Gr, hypo, and 
pharynx.) 


Hypopygium.—The last ventral segment of the 
abdomen. The male claspers for holding the 
female in copula (Loew.). (Gr. hypo, and 
pygidium.) 


Hypostoma.—The term applied to the clypeus in 
Diptera. (Gr. hypo, and stoma, the mouth.) 


99 Imp 


Hypoptere.—Another term for the tegule. (Gr. 
hypopteros, winged.) 


Hystolysis—The decay and dissolution of the 
organic tissues and blood, it includes the 
numerous forms of retrograde metamorphosis 
and degeneration. The change of the organic 
tissues during pupation. (Gr. histos, and lusis, 
a parting from yo, to loosen.) 


Tleum.—The proximal end of the small intestine. 
(Gr. eilo, to roll.) 


Imagal, Imaginal.—Pertaining to the imago. _(L. 
umago.) 


Imago.—The perfect state of the insect. (L. 
the image.) 


Imaginal buds.—Rudiment-groups of cells from 
which arise the organs of the imago during 
pupation ; and which may be seen in the larva. 
(From L. imago, and Du. bot, a bud.) 


Imbricate.—Overlapping one another, like tiles on 
a roof. (L. ambrex, a gutter-tile, from amber, a 
shower.) 


Imperfect.—Not complete or perfect ; unfinished. 
(L. um,=in, not, and perfectus, finished.) See 
Incomplete metamorphosis. 


Impression.— Punctuation ; any marking upon the 
surface; an indentation; a depression. (L. 
impressare, from imprimere, to press upon.) 


Impunctate.—Without punctuation.—(L. in, not, 
and punctum, to prick.) 


In- 100 


In-.—A Latin prefix signifying in, into, on, not, 
etc. 


Inaurate.—When striz or other impressed parts 
have a metallic splendour. (L. i, and aurum, 
gold.) 


Incanus.—White, with asmall proportion of black ; 
grey. (L. incanus, grey.) 


Inecased.—(Pupz.) (L. i, and O.F. casse, L. capsa, 
a box, cover, L. capere, to hold.) See Pup 
folliculate. 


Incised. (Incision.)—Cut into equal marginal 
segments. (L. incisus, p.p. of incisere, to cut 
into.) 


Incisura axillaris—(Wing.) The axillary incision 
which terminates the posterior angle towards 
the base of the wing. (L.) 


Incisure.—A deep incision between the segments, 
when they recede from each other. (L. 
INncisUs.) 


Incomplete metamorphosis.—When there is no 
quiescent or sealed-pupal state in the life history 
of an insect. When histolysis does not take 
place. (L. im, and completus, complete; and 
metamorphosis.) 


Inconspicuous.—Not easily discernible. (L. 2, 
con, and specio, to see.) 


Incrassate, Incrassated.—Thickened. (L. im, and 
crassus, thick.) 


101 Inf 


Incrassate.—Having the margin rounded and 
swollen. Disproportionately thick in part. 
(L. 2m, and crassus.) 


Incumbent.—(Wings.) Those wings, which, when 
the insect is at rest, cover the back of the 
abdomen horizontally. Resting against. One 
lying over the other. (L. encumbo, to lie down.) 


Incunabulum.—Cocoon, the case in which the 
pupa reposes, and which has been articifially 
prepared by the larva. (From L. incunabula, 
cradle, birth-place, origin.) 


Incurved.—Bowed inwards. (L. incurvo.) 
Indurated.—Hardened. (L. induro, to harden.) 


Indusium.—The membrane found between the 
serosa and the amnion. The case or covering 
of certain larve. (L. indusium, an under- 
garment.) 


Inermis, Inermous.— Unarmed, destitute of strie, 
spines, and all sharp processes. (L.) 


Inferior (antenne inferiores)—(Antenne.) Placed 
beneath the head. (L. comparative of inferus, 
low.) 


Inferior Lobe.—(L. inferuws, and Gr. lobos.) See 
Lobus Inferior. 


Inferior region (regio inferior)—(Wing.) (L. inferus, 
and region, from, L. regio.) See Costal region. 
Inflated  (capitulum —compositum).—(Antenne.) 


Having the knob of a capitate antenna in the 
form of a bladder. (L. in, and flo, to blow.) 


Inf 102 


Inflected.—Bent inwards at an angle. (I. inflecto, 
to curve.) 


Infra-anal flaps——The podical plates (Packard.) 
(L. 2nfra, underneath, and anus.) 


Infra-anal lobe.—A thick, conical, fleshy lobe, often 
ending in a hard, chitinous point, and situated 
directly beneath the vent. (Packard.) 


Infra-buccal cavity—A short compressed buccal 
tube, dilated ventrally to form a spheroidal sac, 
situated in the mouth of Ants, and used as a 
receptacle for the fine particles of food rasped 
off or picked up by the tongue. (L. infra, and 
bucca, the mouth.) 


Infracted.—Bent inwards abruptly, as if broken. 
(L. n, and frango, to break.) 


Infra-ocular (ant. infra-oculares)—(Antennee.) In- 
serted beneath the eyes. (L. infra, underneath, 
and oculus, an eye.) 


Infumated.—Clouded, as if smoked; coloured like 


smoke. (L. in, and fumus, to smoke.) 


Infundibulate, Infundibuliforme.—Having the shape 
of a funnel. (L. enfundibulum, a funnel.) 


Infuseate, Infuscated.—Darkened, with a blackish 
tinge. (L. in, and fuscus, dark.) 


Ingluvies.—The Crop. (L.) 


Ingurgitation—The act of swallowing. (L. 
ingurgito, to soak in.) 


Inner.—Interior; nearer to the centre. (A.S. 
unnera.) 


103 Ins 


Inner angle.—(Wing.) The angle situated at the 
junctions of the outer edge and the inner edge. 


Inner edge.—(Wing.) The interior angle. The 
extreme border running from the inner angle 
to the insertion of the wing in the thorax. 


Inner margin, Interior margin.—(Wing.) The 
margin which extends from the base to the 
posterior angle. 


Inocular (antenne inoculares).—(Antenne.) When 
the eye surrounds the base of the antenne. 
(L. in, and oculus, an eye.) 


Inquiline.—A dweller in the nest of an alien species. 
Inquilines: the term given to those insects 
(species of Cinipide) which do not make 
galls, but deposit their eggs in galls already 
formed, and live in the gall tissues, killing the 
gall-maker asarule. (L. inqualinus, a tenant.) 


Insecta, Insect.—The class Hexapoda; articulated 
animals with a body composed of three distinct 
parts, the head, the thorax, and a segmented 
abdomen. (L. im, and seco, sectum, to cut.) 


Insectivorous.—Subsisting on insects. (Insect, and 
L. vore, to devour.) ; 


Insectum, Insecte, Insect.—The derivation of the 
terms from the two large incrassated masses 
the thorax and the abdomen. (L. insectum, 
literally “‘ a thing cut into,” 7.e. nearly divided, 
from the shape.—L. insectus, past participle 
of insecare, is cut into.—L. in, into; secare, to 
cut.) 


Ins 104 


Inserted.—(Head). When it is partly, particularly 
the occiput, concealed, within the thorax. (L. 
mm, and sero, sertum, to join.) 


Insertio of Maxilla.—The lowest portion of the 
maxilla adjoining the head. (L. am, and sero, 
sertum, and maxilla, cheek-bone, chin.) 


Insertio of Labium.—The lowest portion of the 
labium adjoining the head. (L. i, and sero, 
sertum, and labium, lip.) 


Insertion Insertio.—The point of attachment of 
movable parts. (L. a, and sero, sertum, to 
join.) 

Insertum.—(Head,) (L. im, and sero, sertum.) 
See Inserted. 


Instar.—The new stage after moulting, and casting 
of skin. (L. instar, image ; form, figure, etc.) 


Institia.—Strize of equal breadth throughout. 


Instrumenta cibaria.—The mouth parts. (LL. instru- 
mentum, and cibarius, of food.) See Partes oris. 


Instrumenta cib. libera.—(L. instrumentum, cibarius, 
and liber, free.) See Instr. cib. mordentia. 


Instrumenta masticandi.—The masticating organs, 
another name for Instr. cib. mordentia. (L. 
instrumentum, and from mando, to masticate.) 


Instrumenta cibaria mordentia.—The biting organs ; 
the Mandibles. (L. instrumentum, cibarius, of 
food, and from mordeo, to bite.) 


105 Int 


Instrumenta cibaria suctoria.—The sucking mouth ; 
the haustellum. (L. instrumentum, cibarius, and 
suctus, sucking.) 


Inter--—A Latin prefix signifymg among, or 
between. 


Interior.—Within ; internal; within any limits; 
the opposite to exterior ; the inside. (L. zntra, 
within.) 


Interior edge, Inner edge.—(Wing.) The boundary 
of the inner margin. 


Interior margin.—(Wings.) The inner margin. 
Interior palpi.—The labial palpi. 


Intermaxillaire—The maxillary lobe. (L. inter, 
and mazilla, the jawbone, jaw.) See Lobus 
maxille. 


Intermediate Area.—That part of the wing lying 
between the costal area, and the anal area. 
(L. enter, medium, and area.) 


Internal Chiasma.—The chiasmatic fibres of the 
internal medullary mass. 


Internal hairs” (?).—Internal hair-like _ bodies, 
arising from the fold of the teenidia and pro- 
jecting into the lumen ofthe trachee. (Stokes.) 


Hollow hair-like structures communicating 
with the tenidia from which they arise by an 
enlarged base, ending in a fine—sometimes 


bifid or trifid—poimt. (Packard.) 


Int 106 


Internal Medullary Mass.—The opticon, which 
connects with the median part of the procere- 
brum by direct fibres to form the optic nerve 
or tract. 


Internal maxillary palpi.—(L. internus, maxilla, 
and palpi.) See Palpi maxilliares interni. 


Internal paramera.—The inner pair of genital 
appendages of the Male; they are closely 
applied to each other, and function as a penis. 


Inter-ocular (antenne interoculares).—(Antenne.) 
Placed between both eyes. (L. «inter and 
oculus.) 


Interrupted.—Suddenly stopped; broken;  inter- 
mitted. (L. inter, and ruptum, to break.) 


Interstices.—Spaces between striz, or rows of 
punctures on the elytra. Spaces between things 
closely set. (L. inter, and status, a position.) 


Interstitial line——The longitudinal space which 
intervenes between two strizw of the elytra. 
(L. ater, and status.) 


Intervals.—Spaces between the striz, or rows of 
punctures on the head and thorax. (L. znter, 
and vailum, a rampart.) 


Interventricular valvule-—A minute valve working 
in conjunction with the auriculo-ventricular 
opening of the Dorsal vessel. (L. inter, ventri- 
culus and valva.) 

Intestina parva.—The small intestine. [See 


Intestines.] (L. entus, within, and parvus, 
small.) 


107 Inv 


Intestines.—A tube uniting with the stomach, and 
consisting of two portions, the small intestine 
or intestina parva, and the terminal intestine, or 
rectum. They are never subject to the con- 
volutions so general in vertebrata. (There are 
several long tortuous filiform appendages 
originating from the stomach, or near its 
union with the intestines, which are said to be 
bile vessels corresponding with the liver of 
vertebrata.) (KF. intestin, from L. intestinus, 
inwards, from intus, within.) 


Intima.—The endotrachea. 


Intorted.—Turned or twisted inwards. (L. in, and 
torqueo, to twist.) 


Intricate.—When elevations are placed irregularly 
and close together, or involved, or complicated. 
(L. a, and tric, hindrance.) 


Intro.—A Latin prefix signifying to, within. 


Introrsum.—(Direction). Inwards; introrse, turned 
inwards. (L.) 


Invertebral, Invertebrate.—Destitute of the verte- 
bral or spinal column. (I. im, and vertebra, a 
joint.) 


Involuted.—Rolled inwards spirally. (L. cnvolvo, 
to roll to, or upon.) 


Involvulus.—A caterpillar that wraps itself in 
leaves. (L.) 


Tri 108 


Iridescent.—Exhibiting prismatic colours, like 
those of the rainbow. (L.—Gr. bL, aris—Gr. 
iris, iridis, the rainbow. Der.  irid-esc-ent, 
irid-ium ; from irid-, stem of iris.) 


Iridicolorous.—Reflecting prismatic hues, irid- 
escent. (Gr. irzs, and L. color.) 


Iris.—The circle of colour which encloses the pupil 
of an eye of colour. (Gr. iris, iridis, the rain- 


bow.) 
Iris tapetum.—[See Pigment. ] 


Irregular § (¢rregulares).—(Antenne). Having all 
the joints different in shape. (L. i, and 
reqularis, according to rule.) 


Irrorate, Irrorated.—Freckled; covered with atomi. 
(L. irroro, are, to bedew, drop upon.) 


Islet.—A spot of different colour, included in a 
plaga, or macula. (Fr. éle, from L. imsula.) 


Johnstonian organ.—A peculiar organ existing in 
the second antennal joint, and consisting of a 
number of sensille and scolopal bodies; the 
former being stretched through the cavity of 
this joint and attached by the distal ends to 
the articulatory membranes of the second and 
third joints, while the proximal ends are inner- 
vated by the antennal nerve. 


Jubate.—Fringed with long pendent hairs ; ex. the 
intermediate legs of the male of Anthophora 
retusa. (L. juba, @, mane, hair, tuft, crest.) 


109 Lab 


Jugulum.—The throat, extending from the orifice of 
the mouth to the neck, and comprises the whole 
of the middle portion of the lower-head. (L. 
jugulum, the throat.) See Gular, and Basilaire. 


Justa-.—In composition indicates near, as justa- 
ocular—situated near the eye. (L. juzta, near.) 


Justa-ocular,—Situated near the eye. (L. justa, 
and oculus.) 


Labella.—Liplets ; a pair of tumid lobes, often 
corrugated and capable of tension and relaxa- 
tion, which terminate the theca. (L. labium, 
lip.) 

Labellum.—The lower lip, the labium. (L. a 
lip.) 


Labial.—Pertaining to the lips.—(L. labium.) 
Labial nerves.—[See Nervi labii.] 


Labial palpi, Labipalpi.—Jointed feelers borne by 
the labium. (L. labium, and palpare, palpari, 
to feel.) 


Labium.—The underlip, which is that organ that 
assists in the closing of the orifice of the mouth 
from below. It is formed by the second maxille 
fusing together, and consists of two parts, the 
mentum and the lingula. (L. the lip.) 


Labium-hypopharynx.—In the male Anopheles 
(A. maculipennis) the hypopharynx is fused 
with the labium, hence the term. 


Lab 110 


Labium superius.—(L. labium and supero above.) 
See Labrum. 


Labrum.—The upper lip, a somewhat convex 
corneous plate which is united posteriorly by a 
membranous hinge with the clypeus. (L.) 


Labrum-epipharynx.—In the mouth parts of the 
mosquito, some anatomists maintain that the 
labrum and epipharnyx are combined, and the 
term is used by those believing in this theory. 
The term used to differentiate between the 
epipharynx of Diptera and the double organ of 
Lepidoptera. 


Lacinia.—The inner portion of the endopodite ; 
the blade of the maxilla, bemg the fourth, or 
apical portion. (L. the lappet.) See Blade. 


Lacinie.—The second pair of appendages com- 
prising with the volselle, the median pair of 
genital appendages. (L. the lappets.) 


Lacinie Exteriores.—Two elongate, flattened or 
concave biarticulate valves situated on the 
tongues of the members of the family Apidee, 
and which support the labial palpi. They are 
distinguished from the labial palpi by being flat 
instead of cylindrical. (L.) 


Laciniz Interiores.—T wo inarticulate membranace- 
ous valves, which embrace the tongue at its 
entrance into the tube, seen in the family 


Apide. (L.) 


Laciniate.—Divided into stripes. (L. acinia.) 


Lit Lam 


Laciniated.—Cut into irregular segments ; jagged. 
(L. lacinia.) 


Lactescent.—Yielding or secreting a milky fluid. 
(L. dactescens, from lac, milk.) 


Lacteus.—Of a shning white or milky colour. 
(L. lac, milk.) 


Lacuna.—A pit, a gap, a void space. (L.) 


Lacunose.—Having a few scattered, irregular, 
broadish, but shallow excavations; furrowed 
or pitted. (L. tacuna, a pit.) 


Lactus.—Very bright in colour. (Evidently from 
L. laetus, bright.) 


Lageniform.—Bottle-shaped in form ; bellying out 
and then ending in a narrow neck. (L. Jagena, 
a bottle, and form.) 


Lagenoid.—Flask-shaped. (L. dagena.) 


Lamellate.—(Antenne.) Having only the apical 
portion flabellate. (L. lamella, a thin plate or 
scale.) See Lamina. 


Lamellate, Laminate.—Plated, sheet or leaf-like ; 
composed or covered with lamine.. (L. lamella, 
plate.) 


Lamelliform.—Having the form of a plate, leaf or 
scale. (L. lamella, and form.) 


Lamina-x, Lamella.—a thin flat plate or scale. 
(L. a plate, or scale.) 


Lamina supra-analis.—The term Haase applies to 
the suranal plate. (L.) 


Lam 112 


Lamine.—The two corneous plates which are 
laterally affixed to the mouth of Pulex. (L. 
lamina.) 


Lanate.—Covered with fine, very long, flexible 
and rather curling hairs, resembling wool ; wool- 
like. (L. lana, wool.) 


Lanceolate.—Straight, flat, and decreasing to a 
point ; lance-like; gradually tapering to the 
outer extremity. (L. lancea, a lance.) 


Laniarii.—Canine-teeth ; very sharp, usually long 
conical teeth. (L. lanio, to tear.) 


Lanuginosus, Lanuginose.—Covered with a thick 
down, or fine soft hair. (L. lana.) 


Lanuginous.—Having long curled hairs. (L. lana.) 


Large Intestine.—The tube immediately between 
the small intestine (ileum) and the colon (or 
rectum.) (L. largus, great, and intestine.) 


Larva, -#.—An insect after issuing from the egg ; 
the second stage of an insect’s life; the cater- 
pillar stage (the term “ caterpillar” is generally 
applied to the larvee of butterflies and moths). 


( L. a mask.) 


Larve aculeate.—Larve possessing dense hair, 
which is fur-like in appearance. (L. larva, @, 
and aculeatus.) 


Larve cornute.—Larve possessing fleshy horns 
or processes. (L. larve, and cornu, a horn.) 


113 Lat 


Larve fureifere.—Larve possessing a furcate 
process, the branches of which are pierced, so 
that the larve have the faculty of protruding 
slender threads through these tubes for the 
purpose—as is supposed—of scaring inimical 
ichneumons. (L. larvae, and furca, a fork, and 
fero, to bear.) 


Larve ursinze.—Hirsute caterpillars, which are 
completely clothed with long hairs and bristles, 
and which, from their stiffness and sharp 
points will often cause an unpleasant inflamma- 
tion upon the skin. (L. larva, and ursus, a 
bear.) 


Larval.—Pertaining to the larva.—(L. larva.) 
Larvated.—Masked. (L. larva.) 


Larviparous.—Bringing forth larve.—(L. larva, 
and parous, from pario, to bring forth.) 


Laterad.—An abbreviated form of laterally, or 
lateral. 


Lateral.— Pertaining to the side. (L. atus, lateris, 
a side.) 


Lateral Sympathetic System.—A pair of small 
gangha situated one on each side of the 
cesophagus. The nerves are small and confined 
to the dorsal and lateral portions of the 
anterior region of the oesophagus. 


Latericius.—Resembling bricks in colour. (L. 
consisting of brick.) 


Lateritius.—Brick-red in colour. (L. laterculus, 
a brick.) 


Lat 114 


Latticed.—Cancellated. (Fr. Jattis, lath-work.) 


Leg.—One of the six chief organs of locomotion, 
arising from the segments of the thorax, and 
which are made up of four main portions, the 
coxa, femur, tibia, and tarsus. The tibia 
(Say). (Icel. leggr, a leg, a hollow bone.) 


Lenticular.—Lens-shaped. The horizontal section 
is circular, and the vertical lanceolate ; resem- 
bling a lentil in shape; having the form of a 
double-convex lense. (L. dens, a lentil.) 


Lenticulate.—Having the opposite sides convex; 
meeting in a sharp point. (L. lens.) 


Lenticulate.—(Egg.) Depressed, circular, and 
frequently ribbed. (L. lens.) 


Lepidoptera.—A group of Hexapoda; an order of 
insects, including butterflies and moths, which 
possess four wings, covered with minute, powc er- 
like scales. (Gr. lepis, a scale, and pteron, a 
wing.) 


Leucocytes.—The blood corpuscles; they vary 
considerably in shape, from oval to round, but 
they are usually elongate, with a rounded 
nucleus. (Packard.) The originator of the 
name was Robin, who applied it to the lymph 
corpuscles of vertebrates. (Gr. Jeukos, white, 
and kutos, a hollow, a vessel.) 


Levigate.-—Smooth surfaced, free from elevations 
or depressions of any kind. (L. levis, smooth, 
ago, to make.) 


115 Lin 


Levigate, Levigatus, Levis.—Possessing a smooth 
surface. (L. levis, and ago.) 


Liberum.—(Head.) (L. liber, free.) See Free. 


Ligneous, Ligniform.—Wood-like, unelastic in 
substance. (L. lignum, wood.) 


Lignivorous.—Feeding on wood. (L. lignum, wood, 
and vore, to devour.) 


Ligula.—The Lingula. (Saunders.) (L. lingua.) 


Lilaceus.—The colour of lilac, or lilies. (L. lidium, 
a, lily.) 


Lilacinous.—Lilac colour; like violaceous, only 
duller and tinged with red. (L. Lilium.) 


Limb.—(Superficies.) The circumference; the 
edge or border. (L. limbus, a border.) 


Limbate.—When one colour is surrounded by a 
margin of a different colour; bordered. (L. 
limbus.) 


Limbus.—The border surrounding the disc. (L. a 
border.) 


Line.—A very slight, generally straight, but also 
sometimes bent, different coloured stripe. 
(L. linea, a string of flax, from dinwm, flax.) 


Linear.—-Having the lateral margins very close 
together, and parallel throughout. (L. linea.) 


Lineate, Lineated, Lineatus.—With longitudinal 
stripes ; marked longitudinally with depressed 
parallel lines. (L. linea.) 


Lin 116 


Lineate, Lineatus.— Raised lines on the surface 
Provided with line-like marks.—(L. linea.) 


Lingua, Lingula.—The endopodites together; the 
tongue; the second piece constituting the 
Jabium, it reposes internally upon the mentum. 
It is generally a more or less fleshy organ, which 
frequently protrudes beyond the anterior 
margin of the mentum, in which case the exterior 
inferior side is horny (see Os hyoideum). A 
capillary instrument between the lancets of 
an haustellum. Lingula, the apical portion 
of the labium. (L. lingua, the tongue.) 


Lingua Spiralis—The tongue of those insects 
constituting the Lepidoptera. (L. lingua, and 
spiro ¢) See Spiral Tongue. 


Linguiform.—Having the form or shape of a tongue. 
(L. lingua, and form.) 


Literate—Ornamented with characters resembling 
letters. (L. litera, a letter.) 


Litura, -z.—An indistinct spot, paler at its margins, 
generally of colour. Having the appearance of 
bemg blotted. (L. ditura, a blot ; indistinct.) 


Liturate.—Possessing lituree. (L.) 


Lividus.—Black and blue; of a lead colour; 
discoloured ; the colour of liver. (L.) 


Lobate.—Having the margin divided by deep 
undulating and successive incisions. (Gr. 
lobos, lobe of the ear.) 


117 Lob 


Lobate.—Divided to the middle into parts with 
convex margins, which recede from each other. 


(Gr. Lobos.) 


Lobes.—The parts of an organ separated one from 
another by a more or less deep division. (F.— 
Low L.—Gr. Fr. lobe.—Late L. lobus.—lobos, 


a lobe of the ear or liver.) 


Lobes, Lobi.—The Jobes, the parts of the maxilla 
above the palpus. They include the lobus 
superior, lobus inferior, and the ungues. (Gr. 
lobos.) 


Lobes, Lobuli— Rounded portions of the base of 
the wing. (Gr. lobos.) 


Lobus maxille.*—The maxillary lobe, the fourth 
piece constituting the maxilla, it is generally 
completely horny, and hooked, its interior 
margin concave, or stalked ; but it is varying 
in structure according to the genealogical 
position of the insect. (Gr. ldobos, and L. 
maxilla.) 


Lobus Inferior.—The lower-lobe. The lower lobe 
of the maxilla, covered by the lobus superior. 
(Gr. lobos, and L. comparative of inferus, low.) 


Lobus Superior.—The upper lobe.f The outer 
lobe of the maxilla, incumbent on the inner 
one. (Gr. lobos, and L. comparative of superus, 
high, from super.) 


* Intermaxillaire according to Straus. 
t It is called the Galea by Fabricius. 


Lon 118 


Longiores.—(Antennz.) The term is used when 
the antenne are longer than the body. (L. 
longus, long.) 


Longissime.—(Antenne.) The term is used when 
the antennee are very much longer than the 


body. (L. longus.) 


Longipennate.—With long wings. (L. longus, 
and penna, a feather.) 


Longitudinal. Running lengthwise ;_ the direction 
of the longest diameter. (L. longitudo, from 
longus.) 


Longitudinal Sternze.—Muscles stretched length- 
wise along the lower wall of the abdomen, 
from the front edge of the second sternite to 
the front edge of the seventh. (L. longus, and 
sternum, breast-bone.) 


Longitudinal Tergze.—Muscles beneath the upper 
wall of the abdomen, each set connecting with 
the front edge of a segment with the front edge 
of that next behind. (L. longus, and tergum, 
the back.) 


Loopers.—The larvee of Geometridae, called loopers 
because they form a loop-like position by 
alternately elevating and straightening the body 
while walknig. (Gael, Jub, a bow.) 


Lora.—A corneous angular machine observable 
in the mouth of some insects, upon the inter- 
mediate angle of which the mentum sits, and on 
the lateral ones the cardines of the maxille ; 
and by means of which the trophi are pushed 
forward or retracted. (From L. Jorum, a thong.) 


» 119 Lut 

Lozenged.—Being similar in shape to a lozenge ; 
having two opposite angles acute and two 
obtuse, forming a quadrangular figure ; in the 
form of a rhombus. (F. Formerly losenge, esp. 
a shield of a diamond shape [in heraldry }—O.F. 
losenge, lozenge [F. losange|, a lozenge. Origin 
disputed ; probably from O.F. laze, a flat 
stone.) 


Lubricous.—Slippery as if lubricated ; smooth, of 
a shiny smoothness. (L. lubricus, slippery.) 


Lucidate, Lueidus.—Shining;~ = muirror-like in 
appearance ; bright; clear; radiant. (L. lv, 
lucis, light.) 


Lumen.—The enclosed space. Lumen of the tubes, 
the space enclosed by the tracheal tubes. (L. 
space for admission of light.) 


Lunare, Lunate.—In the form of a half-moon ; 
crescent-shaped. (L. luna, the moon.) 


Lunulate.—Crescent-shaped ; like the new moon in 
shape. (L. dunula.) 


Lunule, Lunulet.—A crescent-shaped spot or mark 
of a different colour from the rest. (L. lunula, 
a little moon, or crescent.) 


Luridus.—Yellowy-brown ; pale in colour, even 
resembling a ghastly hue. (L. pale; yellowish.) 


Luteous.—Light in colour; of a brownish-yellow 
or clay colour; yellow, like the yolk of an egg. 
(L. luteus, yellowish ; gold-coloured ; safiron.) 


Lut 120 


Lutose.—Apparently or absolutely covered with 
dirt. (Many beetles that live in clay soil are 
always thus covered, for example the species 
of the genera Arida, Meleus variolosus.) (L. 
luto, are, to besmear.) 


Lutosus.—The colour of yellow-clay. (L. luteus.) 


Lyrate.—Lyre-shaped ; cut into several transverse 
segments, and gradually enlarging towards the 
extremity. (L. lyra, a lyre.) 


Macrolabia.—The term applied to the longer 
forms of forceps of the Forficulidee (Karwigs) 
when these organs are of variable length. (Burr.) 
(Gr. mackros, long, and L. labia, a lip [?]). 


Macula.—A large angular spot, of a dark colour, 
* upon a uniform surface. (L. a spot.) 


Maculate.—Possessing macule. (L. macula.) 


Macular fascia.—A fascia consisting of distinct 
spots. (L. macula, and fascia, a band.) 


Maculate.— Possessing macule. (L. macvla.) 


Maerianum.—The segment of the postpectus 
situated one on each side behind the acetabulum 
and parapleurum; it supports the posterior 


legs (Say). 


Magaritaceous.—(Splendour). Glossy white with 
changeable tints of purple, green, and blue. 
Like the splendour of pearls; like mother-of- 
pearl. (Gr. margarites, a pearl.) 


121 Man 


Maggot.—The term applies to a grub when all 
trace of limbs has disappeared. (M.E. magot, 
magat, from Welsh maceiad, macia, a maggot ; 
magiaid, grubs.) 


Maggot.—The term applied to larve when all 
trace of limbs has disappeared. 


Male pronucleus.—The nucleated head of the active 
sperm-cell. (Fr. male, from L. masculus, and 
pro, nucleus, a nut.) 


Malpighian tubules.—Exceedingly fine glandular 
tubes for excretory purposes. Generally sixty 
to seventy in number, opening into the food 
canal where the stomach joins the small intes- 
tine. (Malpighi is the name of the celebrated 
Italian anatomist, the discoverer of the tubes, 
and L. tubus, a tube.) 


Malleoli.—Halteres. (L. madleolus, a small hammer.) 


Mammule.—Anal protuberances connected with 
the spinning of web. Ex. Araneidee. (From 
L. mammosus, protuberant.) 


Mandibles, Mandibule.—The biting jaws, which 
are two strong corneous bent hooks, their mner 
margin being more or less dentate ; and which 
articulate with the genze at their broad basis, 
and move by ginglymus opposed to each other 
like the blades of scissors. (L. mando, to 
chew.) 


Mandibular.—Belonging to, or pertaining to the 
mandibles, or the biting mouth generally. 


Man 192 


Mandibular Glands.—A well developed cluster of 
cells situated on each side of the head just in 
front of the optic ganglia. The ducts are 
grouped in bundles and open separately on to 
the cribellum of the mandibles. 


Mandibular Nerves.—[See Nervi mandibularum. | 


Mandibulate, Mandibulated.—Provided with biting 
jaws. (L. mando.) 


Mandueate.—Pertaining to the mandibles ; capable 
of biting. (L. manduco, to chew.) 


Manitrunk, Manitruncus.—The anterior portion of 
the trunk bearing the anterior legs, and in which 
the head inosculates. It includes the prothorax 
and antepectus. (L. manus, the hand, and 
truncus.) 


Manus.—The ‘“ hand”; the articulated termina- 
tion of the anterior legs. The anterior tarsi 
including the palma. (L. the hand.) 


Mareescent.—Shrivelling ; decaying. (L. marces- 
cens, from marcesco, to fade.) 


Margin.—The outer edge. (L. margo.) 


Marginal cells (cellule marginales).—The cells of 
the wing immediately beyond the stigma, 
towards the extreme point of the wing, they are 
generally two or three in number (L. margo, 
and cella). 


Marginal Cellule.—[See Radical cellule.] 


Margined.—Furnished with a distinctly pronounced 
outer edge. 


123 Max 


Margo.—The margin. (L.) 


Marmorate, Marmoraceous.—Marble-like in colour 
and marking; variegated like marble. (Gr. 
marmaros, marble.) 


Marsupium.—The cradle-like pouch, formed by 
the anal plates of the Coccidee (genus O7thezia) 
for carrying the young and eggs. (Gr. mar- 
supion, a bag.) 


Mask.—A peculiar modification of the labium of 
the Dragon-fly-nymph. The structure is 
attached by its base to a point below the mouth, 
hiding the face (hence the term.) The function 
of the mask is to assist the insect to catch its 
prey. (Fr. masque.) 


Masked.—(Pupe.) (Fr. masque.) See Pupe 
larvatee. 


Mastagia.—Two anal organs from which arise a 
retractile thread, seen in some larvee, and with 
which they lash their sides, endeavouring to 
drive off Ichneumons. (Kirby and Spence.) 


Maxillze.—The under jaws, which in many respects 
resemble the mandibles, but are: smaller, and 
more delicate in structure, consisting of four 
pieces. Jointed processes following the man- 
dibles behind. (L. mazilla, the jaw, jaw-bone.) 


Maxillz lanceolatz.—Lanceolate maxille. (L., 
and lancea, a lance.) 


Maxille setose (sete rostri inferiores).— Setosed 
maxille ; maxille carrying bristles or hair. 
(L. and seta, a bristle.) 


Max 124 


Maxille unguiculate.—(L., and wnguis, a- claw.) 
See Unguiculate. 


Maxillary.—Pertaining to the maxille. 


Maxillary Glands.—Two groups of cells situated 
near the median plane of the head, above the 
buccal tube, and near the infra-buccal cavity. 


Maxillary Lobes.—[See Lobus maxille.] 
Maxillary Nerves.—[See Nervi maxillarum. | 


Maxillary palp, pl. palpi ; Maxipalpi.—a five-jointed 
process carried on the outer edge of the distal 
end of the stipes. 


Mayrian Furrow.—The larve Y-shaped groove 
which the mesonotum in some male ants presents 
when viewed from above. 


Media.—The area lying between the cubitus and 
the radius of the wing. (L. medius, the 


middle.) 
Median.—Central. (L. medius.) 


Median.—(Wing).—A cross or radiating nervure of 
the wing. (L. medius.) 


Median Nerve.—The small nerve constituting the 
superadded nervous system, and from which 
the respiratory nerves arise. It originates 
from the subcesophageal ganglion, and is com- 
paratively short, in some instances being only 
an enlargement of the subcesophageal gang- 
lion.* 


* In these instances it is called by Brandt the ganglion of 
the median nerve. 


125 Mem 


Median Pair of genital appendages of the Ant, are 
composed of the volselle and the lacinie, and 
are situated between the stipites and the internal 
paramera. 


Median Segment.—The Propodeum. 


Median Yoke-ridge.—(Embryol.) The free median 
space formed by an incomplete withdrawal of 
the mesadermal cells from the median line. 


Medio-cubital Nerve.—A transverse or cross-nervure 
of the wing, connecting the medial and cubital 
systems. (L. medius, cubitus, a bend, and 
neuron.) 


Medifurea.—A forked process of the anterior 
surface of the medipectus. (L. medius, and 
furca, a fork.) 


Medipectus.—The underside of the anterior division 
of the alitruncus. (L. medius, and pectus, the 
breast.) 


Meliphagus.—Honey-sucking. (Gr. mei, honey, 
and phago, to eat.) 


Melissaeus (Scent).—Balm-scented. (Gr. melissa, 
honey.) 


Melliferous.—Producing honey. (L. mel, honey, 
and fero, to bear.) 


Membrana.—The membranous parts of the hem- 
elytra. (L., a membrane.) 


Membrana vitelli—The thin skin covering the 
yolk of the egg, and which lies immediately 
above the blastoderm. (L. membrana, and 
vitellus, the yolk of an egg.) 


Mem 126 


Membranaceous, Membranous.—Thin ; semi-trans- 
parent ; parchment-like ; resembling membrane 
in consistency. (L. membrana.) 


Membrane.—A thin, white animal tissue, serving 
to line or cover the parts or organs. (L. 
membrana, a skin covering a member.) 


Membrane.—The membranaceous apical portion 
of the elytra of the Hemiptera-Heteroptera. 
(Saunders.) (L. membrana.) 


Membranous.—Pertaining to membrane; of the 
consistency of membrane. (L. membrana.) 


Meniscoidal.—Somewhat globular, with one side 
concave ; concavo-convex ; crescent-shaped ; 
having the form or appearance of a meniscus. 
(Gr. meniskos, a little moon.) 


Mentum.—The smaller of the two-jomted plates 
formed by the two basal parts of the proto- 
podites fusing together. (L., the chin.) 


Mentum.—The chin, one of the two parts constitut- 
ing the labium, being a corneous plate of varying 
form, connected to the clypeus, by means of 
a membrane, with the margin of the gula, and 
forms from beneath the inferior covering of the 


mouth. (L.) 


Merizum.—The plate or plates constituting the 
anterior surface of the sockets of the posterior 
legs, situated behind the acetabulum and 
parapleura. (Knoch.) 


127 Mes 


Meroblastic.—The term given to eggs which undergo 
a partial segmentation. (Gr. meros, a part and 
blastos, a sprout.) See Partial segmentation. 


Mesenteron.—A short thin tube following the 
gizzard which connects the original anterior 
and posterior invaginators of the embryo. 
The mid gut comprising only the stomach. 
(Gr. mesos, middle, and enteron, intestines.) 


Mesepimeron.—[See Mesepisternum. ] 


Mesepisternum.—One of the two elements placed 
on each side of the thorax of Ants, between the 
mesonotum and the mesosternum; the other 
element is the mesepimeron. The mesepi- 
sternum is placed ventrally while the mesepi- 
meron is dorsal. (Wheeler.) (Gr. mesos, 
middle, and epi, on, and sternum.) 


Meso.—A Greek prefix signifying the middle. 


Mesoblast.—(Gr. meso, and blastos, a sprout.) See 
Mesoderm. 


Mesoderm, or Mesoblast.—The middle embryonic 
cell-layer lying between the endoderm and the 
ectoderm. (Gr. meso, and derma, skin.) 


Mesodermal Streaks.—(Embryol.) The two lateral 
streaks formed by the mesoderm dividing, due 
to the withdrawal of its cells from the median 
line. 


Mesonotum.—The upper surface of the mesothorax. 
(Gr. meso, and notum, from notos, the back.) 


Mes 128 


Mesoparapteron.—A small sclerite placed behind 
the mesonotum of Ants; the prascutellum. 
(Wheeler.) (Gr. meso, para, beside, beyond, 
and pteron, a wing.) 


Mesopedes.—The middle or intermediate legs. 
(Gr. meso, and pedes, from pous, a foot.) 


Mesopedum nervi.—The two nerves descending to 
the feet from the mesothroacis cerebroida. 
(Gr. meso, and pedum, from pous, a foot; and 
neuron, a cord.) 


Mesophragma.—A separating partition running 
parallel with the prophragma, and descending 
from the anterior margin of the metathorax. 
(Gr. meso, and phragma, an enclosure.) 


Mesopleura.—The lateral surfaces of the mesothorax. 
(Gr. meso, and pleura, side.) 


Mesoscutellum.—The scutellum of the mesothorax. 
(Gr. meso, and scutellum.) 


Mesoscutum.—The scutum of the mesothorax. 
(Gr. meso, and scutum.) 


Mesosternum.—The prominent central ridge of the 
medipectus. (Gr. meso, and I. sternum.) 


Mesostethium.—The central piece between the 
intermediate and posterior legs. (Gr. meso, 
middle, and stethos, the breast.) See Ace- 
tabulum. 


Mesothoracis scutellum.—The scutellum of the 
mesothorax. (Gr. meso, and L. thorax; and 
scutella, a flat plate.) 


129 Met 


Mesothoracis scutum.—The scutum of the meso- 
thorax. (Gr. meso, and L. thorax ; and scutum, 


a shield.) 


Mesothoracotheca.—The mesothoracic-case ; that 
portion of the theca enclosing the mesothorax. 
(Gr. meso, thorax, and theca, a case.) 


Mesothorax.—The third segment in insects. The 
middle segment of the thorax. (Gr. meso, and 
L. thoraz.) 


Meta-.—A Greek prefix signifying with, beyond, 
after, and among. 


Metabolous.—With complete metamorphosis. 
(Gr. metabole, change.) See Holometabolous. 


Metalz.—The posterior or hind wings, arising from 
the sides of the metathorax,one behind each of the 
forewings (proal@) ; they occasionally possess 
characters the forewings have not. (Gr. meta, 
and L. ala, a wing.) 


Metameres.—The typical rings or segments of the 
insect body. (Gr. meta, and meyros, a part.) 


Metameric Sacs.—The osmeteria which the cater- 
pillars of Orgyia and its allies protrude when 
ageravated. They are red, eversible tubercles, 
situated on the sixth and seventh abdominal 
segments. 


Metamorphosis.—The transformation from the 
imperfect or larval state to the perfect or imagal 
state. An alteration in the appearance of an 
insect, owing to the development of parts 
previously concealed, by a sudden vernantia, 


Met 130 


or casting of the skin. There are only two 
divisions of metamorphosis recognised in 
Entomology :—perfect, when the pupa is quies- 
cent, and imperfect, when it is active. (Gr. and 
L. a transformation.) 


Metanotum.—The upper surface of the metathorax. 
(Gr. meta, and notos, the back.) 


Metaparapteron.—The term given to the post- 
scutellum of Ants. (Wheeler.) (Gr. meta, 
para, beside, beyond, and pteron, a wing.) 


Metapedes.—The posterior or hind legs. (Gr. 
meta, and ‘pous, a foot.) 


Metaplanta.—The second joint of the tarsus. (Gr. 
meta, and L. planta, a sprout.) 


Metapleura.—The lateral surfaces of the metathorax. 
(Gr. meta, and pleura, side.) 


Metapneustic.—A term given to one of the inter- 
mediate types between the holopneustic and 
apneustic tracheal systems:—When only a 
single pair of open stigmata are situated at the 
end of the body. (Larve of Tipula, Culex, 
Coleoptera, Dyticus.) (Gr. meta, and pneuma, 
air.) 

Metapnystega.—A corneous scale covering the 
pneumatic organs in the metathorax. (Kirby.) 


Metapodeon.—The seventh segment in_ insects. 
(Gr. meta, and podeon.) 


Metascutellum.—tThe scutellum of the metathorax, 
(Gr, meta, and scutellum.) 


131 Min 


Metascutum.—The scutum of the metathorax. 
(Gr. meta, and scutum.) 


Metasternum.—The under surface of the meta- 
thorax. (Gr. meta, and L. sternum breast-bone.) 


Metatarsus.—The first joint of the tarsus. (Theo- 
bald.) (Gr. meta, and tarsus.) 


Metathoracis cerebroida.—The second cerebroida ; 
the cerebroida of the metathorax. (Gr. meta, 
thorax, and Li. cerebrum, the brain.) 


Methathoracis scutum.—The scutum of the meta- 
thorax. (G. meta, L. thorax, and scutum, a 
shield.) 


Metathorax.—The fourth segment in insects. (Gr. 
meta, and L. thorax.) 


Metazona.—The posterior portion of the pronotum 
of Forficulide (Karwigs). (Gr. meta, and zone, 
a belt, girdle, etc.) 


Micropyles.—The openings in the chorion of ova, 
through which the spermatozoa may enter. 
(Gr. micro, small, and pule, an opening.) 


Mid-intestine (or stomach).—A simple tube varying 
much in size and shape, and not usually lined 
with chitin as are the fore- and hind-intestines. 
Generally two or more cecal tubes (compound 
stomach) open into the anterior end, or the 
whole outer surface is beset with villi. (A.S. 
mid, midd, and intestine). 

Miniatus.—Of the colour of red-lead. (L., of a 
vermilion red.) 

10 


Mod 132 


Modioliform.—Somewhat globular, but truncated 
at both ends like the nave of a wheel. (L. 
modius, the Roman corn measure, and forma, 
form.) 


Mola.—The grinding surface of the mandibles. 
(L. mola, a mill.) 


Monarsenous.—That kind of polygamy in which 
one male suffices for many females (Say). (Gr. 
monos, single, and arsen, a male.) 


Mono.—A Greek prefix for monos, signifying alone. 


Monodactyle.—Armed with a movable nail or claw 
which closes on the tip (Say); it differs from 
chelate in having but one process. (Gr. mono- 
daktulos, one fingered ; mono, and daktulos, a 
finger.) 


Monogamous.—Propagating by the union of one 
male and one female only. (Gr. monos, and 
gamos, marriage.) 


Moniliform.—(Antenne.) Having each joint oval 
or globose, resembling a necklace; bead-like 
in shape. (L. monile, a necklace, and form.) 


Monomerous.— Of a single piece or joint. (Gr. mono, 
and meros a part.) 


Monothelious.—That kind of polygamy in which 
the female is fecundated by many males (Say). 
(Gr. monos, one, and thelos, female.) See 
Monarsenous. 


Monotypic.—Having one representative only, as a 
genus with a single species. (Gr. mono, and 
typos, an impression, from typto, to strike.) 


133 Mum 


Moschaite.—Possessing a musk-like smell.  (L. 
moschus, musk.) 


Moula.—‘‘ The knee-ball”’ ; the convex and some- 
times bent head of the tibia, armed with a horny 
process on either side for its attachment to the 
femur. (L.) 


Mucro.—A short, stout, sharp-pointed process. 
(L., a point.) 


Mucro.—The central posterior point of the epigas- 
trium—seeninmany of the orders—which reposes 
between the posterior legs; and according to 
some authorities is useful to the insect during 


flight. (L.) 


Mucronate.—Abruptly terminating in a sharp point ; 
possessing pointed processes. (L. mucro.) 


Multi.—A Latin prefix for multus, signifying many, 
much. 


Multiarticulate.—Possessing many joints. (L. 
multi, and articulo, articulare, to divide into 
joints.) 


Multifid, Multifidous.—(Incision.) Cut into more 
than four, or many marginal segments. (L. 
multus, many, and findo, to cleave.) 


Multipartite—Divided into more than four partita. 
(L. multi, and pars, a part.) 


Mumiz pseudonymphe.—The term Lamarck gives 
to those pupze which in their last stage of pupa- 
tion possess some degree of locomotion. 


Mur 134 


Murieate.—Having dispersed elevations rising in 
sharp points. (L. murex, a pointed rock.) 


Muricatus.—When the surface is covered with 
pointed pustules. (L. murez.) 


Murinus.—Grey with a yellowish tinge; of the 
colour of the mouse. (L. mus, muris, a mouse.) 


Musculis antlia.—The muscles of the antlia. (L. 
muscles ; and Gr. antlia.) 


Mushroom Bodies rise from each side of the 
central mass caused by the procerebral lobes 
fusing together; these bodies consist of a 
rounded lobular mass (called the trabecula) of 
the procerebral lobe from which arises a double 
stalk, the larger being called the cauliculus, 
the smaller the penducle or pedicel; these 
support the cup or calyx. (O.F. mouscheron ; 
F. mousseron, from mousse, moss.) 


Mutic.—Without point or spine ; unarmed. (From 
L. mutilus, maimed.) 


Muticum.—(From L. mutilus.) See Inermis. 


Myoglyphides.—The muscle-notches; notches in 
the posterior margin of the collum, usually two 
in number, to which the levator muscles are 
attached. It is chiefly observable in Coleoptera. 
(Gr. mys, a muscle, and glyphis, a notch.) 


Myriapoda.—A class of the Articulata, including 
such as have an indeterminate number of 
jointed feet. (Gr. myrios, many, and pous, a 
foot.) 


135 Ner 


Mystax.—Hair situated on the clypeus, over the 
mouth ; whiskers. (Gr. the beard upon the 


upper lip.) 


Naked.—(Pupx.)—(A.S. nacod, +- Du. noakt, Ger. 
nackt.) See Pupe nude. 


Nasus.—The nose; that portion of the face often 
elevated and remarkable, situated between the 
labrum, postnasus, and gene, and with 
which the labrum articulates. It includes the 
rhinarium. (L., the nose.) 


Natatorial—Adapted for swimming. (L. no, 
natum, to swim.) 


Navicular.—When two sides meet and form an 
angle, like the keel of a boat. (L. navicula, 
a little ship.) 


Nebulose.—Cloud-like in colouring, having, lighter, 
darker, and paler markings resembling the 
irregular colouring of a cloud. (Gr. nephele, a 
mist, a cloud.) 


Necrophagous.—Feeding on dead or decaying 
matter. (Gr. nekros, dead, and phago, to eat.) 


Nectaries.—The Cornicles—(From L. nectar, 
nectar.) 


Nervi antennarum.—The antennary nerves. They 
originate from the anterior margin of each 
hemisphere of the cerebrum, but more laterally 
when the antenne are lateral, and centrically 
when those organs are inserted in the face. They 
run as simple undivided filaments, which in 


Ner 136 


the first case pass over the tendons of the 
mandibles, and in the second proceed contigu- 
ously to the great flexors of the mandibles, to 
the root of the antenne, immediately beneath 
the membrane connecting them to the clypeus, 
but without sending off branches. They run 
from the base of the antenne to the apexes, 
giving off on all sides delicate auxiliary branches 
to the muscles. (Burmeister.) (L.) 


Nervi labii—The labial nerves; these nerves 
come, when separated from those of the 
maxillee, from the centre of the anterior margins 
of the cerebellum, and run direct to the labium, 
and here divide into several—generally two— 
main branches, the inner ones going to the 
tongue, and the outer ones to the labial palpi. 
(Burmeister.) (L.) 


Nervi mandibularum.—The mandibulary nerves. 
They pass out of the anterior portion of the 
cerebellum; they give off several delicate 
auxiliary branches to the flexors and extendors 
of the mandibles, and lastly, accompanied by 
branches of the trachea, pass into the cavity of 
the mandibles. (Burmeister.) (L.) 


Nervi maxillarum.—The maxillary nerves. They 
sometimes originate in front, and sometimes 
behind the nerves of the mandibles, from the 
cerebellum, and run closely to them, passing 
between the muscles to the maxille. (Bur- 
meister.) (L.) 


137 Nig 


Nervi oculorum.—The optic nerves. They 
originate from the lateral margins of the 
hemispheres of the cerebrum, and extend to the 
orbits, becoming gradually clavate, where they 
radiate into many branches. (Burmeister.) 


(L.) 


Nervi optici secundarii.—The auxilliary optic nerves. 
They are peculiar only to insects possessing 
stemmata, and originate from the central portion 
of the cerebrum, and extend as simple and very 
fine filaments to the spot where the stemmata 
are situated, and then gradually diverge from 
each other. (Burmeister.) (L.) 


Nervous System.—[See Cerebral ganglion. ] 


Nervures, or Nerves (Nervz.)—(Wing.) | Corneous 
tubes for expanding the wing, and keeping it 
tense. (L. mnervus, from Gr. neuron, a 
sinew, a chord.) 


Neurilemma.—The hardish sheath formed of cells 
and nuclei covering the ganglii. (Gr. neuron, 
and lemma, a husk, or rind.) 


Neuroptera.—A family of Hexapoda. An order of 
insects havingfourtransparent, finely reticulated, 
membranous wings. (Gr. neuron, a nerve, 
and pteron, a wing.) 


Nictitant ocel/us——When the eye of colour includes 
a lunar spot of a different colour. (From L. 
nicto, to wink, and oculus, an eye.) 


Niger.—The colour of lamp-black. (L. black.) 


Nig 138 


Nigrescent.—Approaching to black in colour. 
(L. nigresco, to grow black.) 


Nigricanite—Blackish ; a bright black inclining 
to grey. (L. mgror, oris, blackness; dcark 
colour.) 


Nigricans.—An impure black colour. (L. niger.) 


Nitid.—Shining.—(L. nitadus, shining, from niteo, | 
to shine.) 


Nitidum, Nitidus.—Shiny and glossy like metal. 
(L. niteo, to shine.) 


Niveus.—White ; snow-like. (L., snow.) 


Nodding Horn.—When a horn bends forwards. 
(M.E. nodden; not in A.S.; but the original 
form began with hn; and A.S. horn.) 


Nodose (Nodosum.)—(Antenne.) Having the 
intermediate and terminal joints thicker than 
the remainder. Knotted, having knots or 
swelling joints. (L. nodosus, knotty; nodus, 
a knot.) 


Nodular.—Pertaining to a nodule or knot.  (L. 
nodus.) 


Nodule.—A small knot or swelling. (L. nodus.) 
Nodulose, Nodulous.—Possessing knots. (L. nodus.) 


Normal.—This term is used loosely, but its 
meaning in comparison is always easily under- 
stood from the context. (L. normalis, adj.— 
L. norma, a carpenter’s square.) 


139 Obe 


Nostril.—(E. nostril=nose-thrill, or  nose-thirl ; 
A.S. nos-u, nose.) See Rhinarium. 


Notum.—The dorsal surface of a segment—the 
term is little used in this form, it is generally 
taken with its preceding part, ex. pronotum, 
etc. (Gr. notum, from notos, the back.) 


Nucha.—The nape; the upper part of the collum. 
it includes the myoglyphides. (Arabic.) 


Nucleat, Nucleiform.—Possessing a nucleus; in 
the form of a nucleus. (L. nucleus, small nut, 
kernel.—L. nut, stem of nux, a nut.) 


Nucleus.—A nerve-centre. (L.) 


Nudum.—Naked ; having no markings or dust 
covering. (L. nudus, naked.) 


Nutant.—(Head.) In observing the relations of the 
head to the thorax, the term is used when its 
longitudinal diameter forms an obtuse angle 
with the axis of the body. Nodding; bent 
down. (L. nutans from nuto, to nod.) 


Nutant.— Bending over at the apex. (L. nutans.) 

Nymph.—The pupal stage of an insect which 
undergoes incomplete metamorphosis. An 
ancient term for pupa. (L. nympha, a pupa.) 

Ob-.—A Latin prefix signifying in the way of, 
toward, and also reversal. 

Obconical—Of a reversed cone-shape—thickest 
part in front. (L. 0b, and M.F. cone,—L. conus, 
a cone.) 


Obcordate.—Inversety heart-shaped. (L. ob, and 
cor, the heart.) 


Obe 140 


Obese.—Unnaturally enlarged and distended, as 
if from disease or too much food ; fat; fleshy ; 
(L. obesus, ob, esum, to eat.) 


Oblate.—Flattened; this term is applied to a 
spheroid of which the diameter is shortened at 
two opposite ends. (L. 0b, and /atus, broad.) 


Oblique-—Running sideways; when the longi- 
tudinal line is cut through at acute angles ; 
slanting; neither perpendicular nor parallel. 
(L. obliquus, slanting.) 


Oblique tergals.—Short muscles connecting the 
edges of the tergites of the abdomen. (L. 
obliquus, and tergum, the hinder part.) 


Oblique sternals.—Very short muscles connecting 
theadjacent edge of the sternites of the abdomen. 
(L. obliquus, and from sternum, the breast-bone.) 


Obliterate—When the borders of spots, puncta, 
granules, etc., fade into the general ground- 
colour, and when elevations and depressions, etc., 
are so little raised or sunk from the surface as 
to be almost erased. (L. ob, and /itera, a letter.) 


Oblongum.—Oblong. (L.) 


Oblong.—Having the longitudinal diameter more 
than twice the length of the transverse diameter ; 
longer than broad. (L. oblonqus.) 


Obovate, Obovatus.—Reversed egg-shaped; in- 
versely ovate. (L. ob, and ovum, an egg.) 


Obscure.—Dark; abstruse; remote from observa- 
tion; indistinct. (L. obseurus, from Skt. sku, 
to cover.) 


141 Oce 


Obscure-aeneus.—Of an indistinct bronze colour. 
(L. obscurus and aeneus, brazen.) 


Obsolete.—When a spot, tubercle, etc., is scarcely 
apparent. N.B.—This term is often employed 
where one sex, kindred species, or genera, want, 
or nearly so, a character which is conspicuous 
in the other sex, or in the species or genus to 
which they are most closely allied. (L. 0b, and 
soleo, to be wont to.) 


Obsolete.—Almost or entirely effaced; not fully 
developed ; indistinct. (L. obsoletus, obsolete.) 


Obtect pupz.—Pup which have the limbs and 
wings immovably fixed by a general hardening 
and fusing of the outer skin, or theca. (I. 0b, 
and tectum, to cover.) 


Obtected.—Covered. (L. ob, and tectum.) 


Obtusa.—(Lacinia.) Rounded and not produced 
into a prominent or active point. (L. obtusus, 
blunt, obtuse.) 


Obtuse.—Having a rounded termination ; blunt ; 
not pointed or acute. (L. obtusus, blunt.) 


Obverse.—When an object is viewed with its head 
towards you. (L. ob, and verto, versum, to turn.) 


Occipital foramen.—A large shield-shaped opening 
behind the head through which the cesophagus, 
nerve cords, and air tubes pass back to the 
body. (L. ob, and caput; and foramen, from 
L. foro, to bore.) 


Oce 142 


Occiput.—The back of the head, around the com- 
mencement of the collum. (L. 0b, and caput, 
the head.) 


Ocelli—Simple eyes, small extra eyes, usually 
situated on the top of the head. The cuticle 
covering the eye is thickened like a lens. Below 
the lens there is a layer of transparent cells, 
continuous with the adjacent epidermal cells. 
(Li. ocellus, a little eye.) 


Ocellate, Ocellated, Ocelloid.—Furnished with round 
spots surrounded by a ring of lighter colour ; 
resembling ocelli in appearance. (L., ocellus.) 


Ocellus.—An eye-like spot of colour, consisting of 
annuli of different colours, enclosing a central 
spot or pupil. (L. an eye.) 


Ochraceus.—Brownish-yellow in colour. (Gr. 
ochra, from ochros, yellowish.) 


Octoon.—The eighth segment in insects. (L. octo, 
eight.) 


Oculi.—Compound eyes. They consist of a large 
number (as many as several thousand) of simple 
eyes, closely packed together in the form of 
hexagons. The compound eye is, however, 
peculiar, in that the ommatidia are very narrow 
and elongate, and each one consists of only a 
few retinal (6-8) and vitreous cells. (Boas.) 
(L. oculus, an eye; L. oculeus, full of eyes.) 


Oculi approximati—Kyes closely set together. 
(L. oculus, and a, and proximus, near.) 


143 (so 


Oculi distantes——Eyes when separated by the 
brow. (L. oculus, and dis, separation, and sto, 
to stand.) 


Oculi nudi.—Naked eyes, eyes without hair, marks, 
or covering. (L. oculus, and nudus, naked.) 


Oculi pilosi—Eyes which have the margins of 
separation thickly set with hair. (L. oculus, 
and pilus, hair.) 


Oculi simplices.—Ocelli, simple eyes.—(L. oculus, 
and simplex, simple.) 


Odoratus.—(Scent.) An undefined sweet smell. 
(L., sweet smelling.) 


nocytes.—Large, yellowish cells, situated on each 
side of the abdomen (rarely found in the thorax) 
and held in place by the trachea. They are 
associated with the blood and fat. (Wielo- 
wiejski.) (Gr. oinos, wine, and kustis, a cyst.) 


Cnocytes.—Glandular cells arising in segmental 
clusters from the ectoderm of the embryo just 
behind the tracheal invaginations. In the 
adult they are very small, and scattered about 
among the fat cells. Their function is not 
exactly known. (Gr. oinos, and kustis.) 


CEruginous.— Bright green. (L. @rugo, rust of 
copper, verdigris.) See Airuginous. 


Csophageal valve.—An invagination of the fore- 
stomach which projects into the cavity of the 
mid-intestine. (Schneider.) 


A tubular prolongation of the posterior end 


(Eso 144 


of the csophagus which passes through the 
proventriculus and opens at various positions 
in the anterior part of the chylific stomach. 
(Gehuchten.) 


Csophagus.—A small tube of the digestive system 
commencing at the posterior end of the buccal 
cavity, passing upwards and backwards directly 
under the brain, and merging into the crop or 
proventriculus, either at the back part of the 
head or in the thorax. (Gr. ovso, to carry, 
and phago, to eat). 


Olfactory.—Pertaining to, or used in smell. (L. 
oleo, to smell, and facto, to make.) 


Olfactory nerve centres.—Paired swellings con- 
stituting the deutocerebron. 


Olivaceous.—Olive green, resembling the green 
colour of olives. (Gr. elaza, an olive.) 


Ommateum.—The compound eye. (Gr. ommatos, 
the eye.) 


Ommatidia.—The eye elements, those parts of 
the eye constituting its structure. (Boas.) (Gr. 
ommatoo, to furnish with eyes.) 


Onischiform.—Shaped like an Oniscus or Wood 
Louse. (Onischus, a wood louse, and form.) 


Onyches.—Claws,the movable hooks usuallysituated 
at the tip of the tarsi. (From Gr. onya, the 
nail.) 


Onychia.—Foot-pads. (Gr. onyx.) See Pulvilli. 


145 Oph 


Onychium.—The last joint of the tarsus which 
carry the onychia or onyches. (Gr. onyz.) 


Ootheca.—The egg-envelope, or egg case; the 
membrane exuded by the female during ovi- 
position, and with which she covers the 
deposited eggs. (Gr. oon, an egg, and theca, a 
case.) 


Oothecal membrane.—{See Ootheca.] 


Ootheeal plates—Two chitinous plates situated 
at the external orifice, within the lower lip, of 
the cloacal chamber, and exercised by the 
female while laying her eggs, to cut the oothecal 
membrane. 


Opacus.—Clouded, not transparent. (L. dark.) 


Opaline.—(Splendour.) Ofa bluish-white, reflecting 
prismatic colours. Like the splendour of opals. 
(L. opal.) 


Opalizans.—Opaline.—(L. opal.) 


Opercula.—The covering of the spiracles of the 
metathorax. (L. operculum, a lid or cover, from 
operio, to cover.) 


Operculiform.—Having the shape or form of a lid 
or cover. (L. operculum, and forma.) 


Operculum.—A lid; a small valvular appendage. 
(L,) 


Ophthalmothece.—The eye-cases, that portion of 
the theca enclosing the eyes. (Gr. ophthalmos, 
the eye, and theca, a case.) 


Opt 146 


Optic ganglia.—The two nerve centres from which 
the optic nerves arise, each is formed of a series 
of ganglionic masses situated between the 
compound eyes and the procerebral mass,— 
the ganglionic plate, external medullary mass, 
and the internal medullary mass. (Gr. optzkos, 
and ganglion.) 


Optic nerve.—The nerve of the eye, which conveys 
the impressions of vision to the cerebral 
ganglion, and which is formed by the fibres of 
the internal medullary mass, and the proto- 
cerebrum uniting. (Fr. opteque, from Gr. 
optikos, pertaining to sight, and neuron, a 
cord.) See Nervi oculorum. 


Optic tract, or trunk.—The optic nerve. (Fr. 
optique, and L. traho, tractum, to draw; or 
truncus.) 


Opticon.—The first swelling of the optic tract. 
(Gr. optikos.) 


Ora.—The broad lateral margin of the prothorax. 
(L., edge, cable, etc.) 
Orb.—A globe; acircle. (L. orbis, a circle.) 


Orbicular.—In the form of an orb. (L. orbicularis, 
from orbis.) 


Orbiculate.—A depressed globe in form, whose 
horizontal section is circular, and vertical oval ; 
being in the form of an orb. (L. orbiculatus, 
from orbis.) 


Orbital.—Relating to the upper border of the eye. 
(Li. orbis, and eo, to go.) 


147 Out 


Ordinate-—When spots, puncta, etc., are placed 
inrows. Thus the terms ordinato-punctate, etc., 
are constructed. (L. ordinatus, in order.) 


Orichaleeous.—Resembling gold in colour. A 
splendour intermediate between that of gold 
and brass. (Gr. oros, a mountain ; and chalkos, 
brass.) 


Orthoptera.—A family of Hexapoda. An order of 
insects having four wings, the first pair being 
leathery with longitudinal! veins, and the second 
pair fan-shaped. (Gr. orthos, straight, and 
pteron, a wing.) 


Os.—A mouth; a bone. (L.) 


Os hyoideum.—The tongue bone, the horny portion 
of the lingula, which often protrudes beyond the 
anterior margin of the mentum. (L. os, and 
Gr. uoides, ‘‘a bone on the top of the windpipe, 
shaped like the letter U.”) 


Osmeterium.—The large coloured V-shaped fleshy 
process, which the caterpillars of the swallow- 
tailed butterflies protrude from a transverse 
slit on the dorsal surface of the prothoracic 
segment. 


Osseous.—Resembling bone; bony. (L. osseus, 
from os, ossis, a bone.) 


Ostia.—Lateral slit-like openings, along the sides 
of the “heart.” (I. ostium, a door, entrance.) 


Outer.— Being on the outside ; external ; opposed 
to inner. (M.E. utter, a comparative form of 
ut, out.) 

u 


Out 148 


Outer edge.—(Wing.) The extreme border running 
from the apex to the inner angle. 


Ova favosa.—Egegs which are placed in closed cells 
formed by the parents for the reception of the 
ova; for ex. Apis, Vespa. (L. ova, eggs, and 
favus, honeycomb.) 


Ova gallata.—EKggs which are placed in the galls 
of plants; for ex. Cynips, Diplolepis. (L. 
ova, eggs, and gadla, a gall-nut.) 


Ova glebata.—Eges which are concealed in lumps 
of dung; for ex. Gymnopl pilularius. (UL. 
ova, and gleba, a clod, soil, etc.) 


Ova gummosa.—Eges which adhere owing to the 
gs § 
presence of a gummy secretion. (L. ova, and 
gummis, gum.) 


Ova imposita.—Eggs which are deposited within 
the food of the young; for.ex. the eggs of 
Ichneumons in the bodies of larve. (L. ova, 
and impositus, part. of impono, to lay, set, or 
place in.) 


Ova nuda.—Egegs which lie dispersed in any 
direction ; for ex. the eggs of Musca domestica L. 
(L. ova, and nudus, naked, disclosed.) 


Ova pilosa——Eggs deposited in irregular heaps 
over which the female spreads hair from her 
posterior abdominal segments to secure them 
from adverse elements; for ex. the eggs of 
Anisopteryx aescularia LL. (L. ova, and pilosus, 


hairy.) 


149 Ova 


Ova solitaria.—Eggs which are placed singly upon 
the food plant; for ex. the eggs of Sphina 
convolvuli L. (L. ova, and solitarius, solitary.) 


Ova spiraliter deposita—Eggs which are placed in 
a spiral line around the young shoots of the 
food plant; for ex. the eggs of Clissiocampa 
neustria L. (L. ova, spiral, and depositus, 
from depano, to lay.) 


Oval, Ovate, Ovoid.—Of the shape of an egg, 
elliptical. (L. ovum, an egg.) 


Ovaliform.—Having the longitudinal section oval, 
and the transverse circular; in the form of an 
oval. (L. ovum, and form; ovi-form, egg- 


shaped.) 


Ovarian tubules.—The ovarioles. (L. ova, and 
tubula, tubes.) 


Ovaries.—Part of the female genitalia. They are 
a pair, consisting of a varying number of tubules 
(ovarioles) which usually extend like fingers 
from the anterior end of the oviduct. Hach 
ovariole is surrounded by a thin membrane and 
is immature anteriorly, consisting of small 
homogeneous cells ; further back there are larger 
cells, young ova, lying in the middle of the tube, 
and surrounded by smaller cells, which provide 
them with nutriment, and also secrete the shell 
(chorion), for the fully developed egg. (Der, 
ov-ar-y; Late L. ouaria, that part of the body 
in which the eggs are formed.) 


Ovarioles.—Tubes or tubules which carry the 
ovaries. [See Ovaries. ] 


Ova 150 


Ovate.—Egeg-shaped. (L. ova.) 


Oviduct.—The tube formed by the eight tubules 
of the ovary. Two in number. (L. ovum and 
duct.) 


Ovigerous.—The term applied to a female insect 
after copulation and the first moult after 
copulation has taken place. (L. ov, and gero, 
to bear.) 


Oviparous.—Producing eggs. (Oviparous,  ovi- 
parous, from L. oui-parous, egg-producing.) 


Oviposition.—The laying of eggs. (L. ovum, and 
pono, to place.) 


Ovipositor.—An appendage of the telum whereby 
the female insect lays her eggs. The ovipositors 
of insects vary, they may be external, as in the 
Ichneumon; or tubular retractile, as in the 
bot-flies, or saw-like (terebella). (L. ovi, and 
positor, from pono, to lay down.) 


Ovisae.—The cavity in the ovary which holds the 
eggs. (Coccidx.) The envelope in which the 
eggs are laid ; sometimes spoken of as sac. (L. 
ovum, and sac; A.S. sacc—L. saccus, a bag.) 


Ovi-viviparous, or ovo-viviparous.— Producing living 
young, 7.e., the egg is hatched in the mother, 
and the young thus born are well developed ; 
a species of propagation to which the ancients 
applied the name Insecta ovo-vivipara. (L. 
ovum, and viviparous, from L. uiui-parous, 
producing living young.—bL. vivus, living; 
parere, to produce.) 


151 Pal 


Ovoid, Ovoidal.—Ege-like; egg-like in shape. 
(L. ovum, and Gr. ezdos, like.) 


Ovum (ova).—The egg; the bodies in the ovaries 
which, when impregnated, become the embryos. 


(L.) 


Pedogenesis—A form of virgin reproduction ; 
when the ovaries become mature during larval 
life, so that eggs are produced which, without 
fertilization, develop within the body of the 
erub; young larve being born in an active 
condition of a larval mother. (From Gr. pais, 
a child, and genesis, production.) 


Pagina inferior.—The lower surface of a wing. 
(L. a leaf or page, and i/ferior.) See Prone 
Surface. 


Pagina superior.—The upper surface of a wing. 
(L. and superior.) See Supine Surface. 


Paired ganglia.—The two nerve centres situated on 
either side of the recurrent nerve just behind 
the supra-cesophageal ganglion and connected 
with cords to one another. They give off nerves 
to the salivary glands. (L. pars, equal, and 
ganglion.) 


Paired Sympathetic Nervous System.—The lateral 
sympathetic nervous system. 


Paleaceous.—Chaffy (Say). Abounding with chaffy 
scales. (From L. palea, chaft.) 


Pallide-fiavens.—Pale or whitish yellow. (L. 
pallidus, pale, and flavus, yellow.) 


Pal 152 


Pallidus.—Very pale in colour. (L.) 


Palma.—The ‘‘ Palm,” the basal tarsal joint of 
the anterior legs, sometimes furnished with 
strigilis. (L. the palm of the hand.) See 
Manus. 


Palmate.—Widened and divided like the hand. 
(L. palma.) See Digitate. 


Palmate hairs.—Ten small conical branched hairs, 
situated one on each side of the upper surface 
of the third, fourth, fifth, sixth and seventh 
abdominal segments of the Anopheles larvee. 
The hairs form a more or less cup-shaped 
organ on the end of a delicate but distinct 
stalk, by means of which the larva is supported 
horizontally, close under the surface of the 
water. 


Palp ; Palpi.—Are the auxiliary organs of a mas- 
ticating or mandibulate mouth; they are 
seldom simple appendages, inserted upon the 
maxille and labium. (L. palpi, from palpo, 
to feel.) 


Palpi sequales.—Equal palpi, opposite of palpi 
ineequales. Palpi possessing equal joints. (L. 
palpi, and equalis, equal.) 


Palpi brevissimi.—Very short, hardly distinguish- 
able palpi. (L. and brevis, short). 


Palpi clavati.—Clavate palpi. (L. and clavus, a 
club.) 


153 Pal 


Palpi cunciformes.—Wedge-shaped palpi ; when the 
last joint is wedge-shaped, which is attached by 
its sharp end to the preceding joint. (L. and 
cuneus, a wedge, and forma, shape.) 


Palpi excavati.—Palpi which have the last joint 
concave at the extremity. (L. and ex, and 
cavus, hollow.) 


Palpi fasciculati—Palpi which have the terminal 
joint split into many threads and processes. 
(L. and fasciculus, a small bundle, etc.) 


Palpi fissi.—Divided palpi; when the last joint is 
divided longitudinally. (L. and fissum, cleft.) 


Palpi inzequales.—Unequal palpi; when single 
joints take a different form. (L. and inequalis, 
unequal.) 


Palpi lamellatiimLamellate palpi. (L.and /amina, 
a plate.) 


Palpi lunati.—Lunate palpi ; palpi in the form of a 
crescent. (L. and duna, the moon.) 


Palpi maxillares interni.—Internal maxillary palpi, 
which are found only in the tiger beetles and 
the water beetles, and which is analogous to the 
galea of the Orthropoda. (L. and maxilla, and 
internus, mternal.) 


Palpi pilosii—Pilose palpi; palpi covered with 
soft down or hairs; hairy palpi. (L. and 
pilus, hair.) 

Palpi subulati.cSubulate palpi; palpi terminating 
in a sharp, fine point. (L. and subuda, an awl.) 


Pal 154 


Palpi turgidi.—Turgid palpi, the last joint being 
turgid, or bladder like in shape. (L. and 
turgidus, swollen.) 


Palpifer.—The Palpiger. (L. palpi, and fero, to 
bear.) 


Palpiformis.—(Galea.) When distinct from the 
lacinia and composed of several cylindrical 


joints. (L. palpi, and forma, shape.) 


Palpiger.—The process situated outwardly at the 
base of the Stipes and bearing the palp. (L. 
palpi, and gero, to bear.) 


Palpiger of labium.—The third portion of the labium, 
bearing the labial palpi. (L. palpi, and gero, 
and labiwm, lip.) 


Palpiger of maxillee.—The third portion of the 
maxille, distinguished by bearing maxillary 
palpi. (L. palpi, and gero, and mazille, the 
cheeks.) 


Panduriform.—Fiddle-shaped ; oblong, broad at 
the two extremities, and contracted in the 
middle. (L. pandura, a bandore, and forma, 
shape.) 


Papilionaceous.—Butterfly-like ; butterfly-shaped. 
(L. papilio, a butterfly.) 

Papillza.—Small rounded tubercles, or pustules. 
(L. small pustules.) 


Papillate—Covered with papille; possessing 
papille or soft tubercles. (L. papilla.) 


155 Par 


Papilliform.—Having the shape or form of a nipple 
or tubercle. (L. papilla, and forma, shape, 
form.) 


Papillulate.—Resembling papille ; having depres- 
sions or elevations with a small elevation in their 
centres. (L. papillw, small pustules.) 


Papillule-—A tubercle or variole with an elevation 
in its centre. (L. papillulus.) 


Pappus.—Down. (L. down.) 
Para-.—A Greek prefix, signifying beside or beyond. 


Paraglosse2.—The short lateral lobes of a setiform 
lingula. The lobes of the second maxille. 
(Gr. para, and glossa, the tongue.) 


Paraglosse.—Filaments growing on the tongue in 
Hymenoptera. 


Parallelopipedous.—Siz-sided, with four parallelo- 
gramical and two quadrate sides; an oblong 
body with a square cross-section. (Gr. para, 
and allelon, one another, parallel; and epi, 
upon, and pedon, the ground.) 


Paramera.—The genital appendages of the male, 
they are divided into the external and internal 
mera (parts). (Gr. para, and meros, a part.) 
See External, and Internal Paramera. 


Paranal lobes.—The podical plates. (Gr. para 
and L. anus.) 


Parapleure.—The lateral pieces on each side of the 
mesostethium. (Gr. para, and pleura, a rib, 
a side.) 


Par 156 


Parapleure.—Side pieces, situated near to, or on 
either side of the acetabulum, limited anteriorly 
by the scapule. They are often divided into 
two. (Knoch.) 


Parapleurum.—The Parapleuree.—Those pieces of 
the postpectus which are situated one on each 
side of the acetabulum, behind the scapula ; 
in some genera there are two on each side, and 
may be distinguished into anterior and posterior 
parapleurze (Say). 


Parapodium.—A foot-tubercle. (Gr. para, and 
podion, dimin. of pous, a foot.) 


Parapsidal suture.—The suture which separates 
each side of the mesonotum from the median 
portion of the segment in Ants. (Wheeler.) 
(Gr. para, and A.S. side.) 


Parapsides.—The lateral portions of the scutellum 
of the mesothorax when it is divided into three 
by longitudinal sutural lines. 


Parapsis.—The area cut off from each side of the 
mesonotum by the parapsidal suture. (Wheeler.) 


Paraptera (pl. 2).—The term McLeay gives to the 
tegule. (Gr. para, and pteron, a wing.) 


Parasite.—An animal which lives in, on, or at the 
expense of the substance of another. Leuckhart 
divided parasites into ecto- and endo-parasites, 
according as they live on, or in, their hosts. 
(Gr. para, and sitos, food.) 


Loz Par 


Parasitical.—Living on, or at the expense of another 
organism, like a parasite. (Gr. para, and 
sitos.) 


Parasitised.—Containing parasites. Affected or 
attacked by parasites. (Gr. para, and sitos.) 


Parastigma.—A darkened spot between the costal 
and post-costal nerves. (Gr. para, and stigma, 
a mark.) 


Parastigmatic glands.—Circular glands sometimes 
present around the openings of the spiracles. 


Parateli corculum.—The twelfth corculum. (Gr. 
para, beside, and telos, end, and L. corculum, 
a little heart.) 


Paratellum.—The twelfth or penultimate segment 
in insects. (Gr. para, and tellum, from telos, 


the end.) 


Paratype.—A specimen which has been compared 
with the type of a species. (Gr. para, and 
typos, from typto, to strike.) 


Parencyhma.—The soft tissues of organs, generally 
applied to that of glands. (Owen.) Applied 
to the proper substance of viscera, excluding 
connective tissue, blood-vessels, and other 
accessory organs. (Huxley.) (Gr. para, and 
engchuma, an infusion; en, in, and cheo, to 
pour.) 


Parietes.—Walls; the perpendicular sides of 
honeycomb; the sides of elevated bodies ; 
the inside walls of any anatomical cavity. 
(L. paries, a wall.) 


Par 158 


Pars basalis.*—(L. pars,a part, and basis, base or 
foot.) See Cardo. 


Partes oris.—The oral organs, or mouth parts. (L. 
pars, a part, and orzs, a mouth.) 


Parthenogenesis.—Production by means of un- 
impregnated ova. (Gr. parthenos, a virgin, and 
gennao, to produce.) 


Parthenogenetic.—Relating to parthenogenesis. 


Partial segmentation.—Kge division; where a 
layer of germinal cells is formed at one side of 
the egg or round the central yolk. (From L. 
parti-, decl. stem of pars, a part, and segment, 
from seco, to cut.) 


Partite—Divided to, or almost to, the base; 
pl. partita. (L. partiri, to divide.) 


Parturition.—The period during which the female 
is producing ova, or larvee, as in the case of 
Coccidee. (L. pario, partum, to bring forth.) 


Patagium, pl. Patagia.—Two horny erectile plates 
sometimes densely covered with hair, on the 
prothorax of Lepidoptera. (L. patagium, a 
gold edging or border on the tunic of a Roman 
lady.) See Tegula. 


Patagium.—A sausage-shaped body situated on 
each side of the prothorax, in front of the first 
pair of spiracles, of mosquitoes. (Christophers.) 


(L.) 
Patella.—A bowl or cup. (L.) 


According to Straus it is named Branche transversale. 


159 Ped 


Patelliform.—Cup or bowl-like. (L. patella, and 
forma.) 


Patulous.—Spreading ; open; having a spreading 
aperture. (L. patulus, from pateo, to lie upon.) 


Pearlaceous.—Having the appearance of a pearl. 
(A.S. perl; Fr. perle—Low L. perula.) 


Pecten.—Rigid, incurved sete, which arm the 
exterior margin of the upper part of the base of 
the maxille, and the valvule. (L. a comb.) 


Pectinate.—Toothed ; resembling the teeth of a 
comb. (L. pectin, stem of pecten, a comb.) 


Pectinato-fimbricatze.—(Antennx). Being pectin- 
ate, and fimbricate at the same time. (L. 
pectin, and fimbria, a fringe.) 


Pectines.—T'wo moveable processes fixed one on 
each side, below the posterior legs, to the meta- 
sternum. (From L. pectin.) 


Pectiniformate.—(Antenne.) Having joints fur- 
nished on one side with slender processes resem- 
bling a comb. (L. pectin, and forma.) 


Pectus.—‘‘ The breast”; that portion of the 
trunk which lies between the neck and the 
abdomen, but which above is covered by the 
elytra. (Knoch.) (L.) 


Pedal.—Pertaining to the foot or leg. (L. pedalis, 
belonging to the foot, from ped-, stem of pes, 
foot.) 


Pedalian.—Pertaining to the foot, or leg. (Li. pes, 
pedis, the foot.) 


Ped 160 


Pedicel—The peduncle. (Fr. pedicelle, O.F. 
pedicule, from L. pedis, a foot.) 


Pedis.—Pl. pedes. A foot, or leg. (L.) 


Pedes natatorii.—Legs adapted to swimming. (L. 
pedis, and no, natum, to swim.) 


Pedes spurii.—Spurious legs, prolegs. (L. pedes, 
and spurius.) See propedes. 


Pedes raptoriiiLegs adapted to the seizing of 
prey.—(L. pedes, and raptor, from rapio, to rob.) 


Pedicellate.—Supported by a pedicel. (L. pedi- 
culus, a foot stalk, a pedicel.) 


Pedicellus.—The second joint of the antennee. (L. 
pediculus, a stalk.) 


Peduncle.—A piece supporting an organ, or joining 
one organ to another, like a neck. (Low L. 
pedunculus, from pedis, a foot.) 


Peduncle.—The smaller of the two stalks arising 
from the trabecula and which support the calyx 
of the mushroom bodies. (LL. pedunculus.) 


Peduncular.—Pertaining to a peduncle. 


Pedunculate.—Having a peduncle ; supported by, 
or supporting a peduncle. 


Pedunculate-—Having the podeon slender and 
thread-like. 


Pellucid, Pellucidate——Coloured, but transparent ; 
clear, transparent. (L. per, very, and ducidus, 
clear.) 


161 Pen 


Peltate.—Target-shaped (Say.). (L. pelta, from 
Gr. pelte, a shield.) 


Pencil.—A long flexible hair. (L. penecillus, dimin. 
of peneculus, from penis, a tail.) 


Pencillate.—Possessing pencils ; when long flexible 
hair is placed upon a thin stalk. 


Pendent.—Hanging down. (Fr. pendant, hanging.) 


Penecelli, Penicelli—tLong flexible hairs. (L. 
penecillus [see pencil] a brush or pencil.) 


Penicillate.—(Maxille.) When the whole superior 
process of the under jaw is clothed with hair. 


PenicilliSmall hairy appendages of the genitalia 
of Ants attached to the tergite, or dorsal plate 
of the tenth abdominal segment. These 
organs are frequently used as diagnostic 
characters for the classification. 


Penicilliform.—Pencil-shaped. 


Penis.—A portion of the male genitalia. It is an 
evagination of the body-wall through which 
the terminal portion of the seminal duct is 
continued, and is capable of partial or complete 
retraction when not in use; in many insects it 
may possess hard chitinous portions, and lies 
hidden within the cloaca, from which it may be 
protruded during copulation. (L.) 


Pennaceous.—Feathered, like the web of a quill. 
(Iu. penna, a feather.) 


Pentamerous.—Having five joints. (Gr. pente, 
five, and meros, a part.) 


Pen 162 


Penultimate.—The last but one. (L. pene, pene, 
almost, and ultimus, last.) 


Per.—A Latin prefix denoting through, by, very, 
over the whole extent. 


Perfect.—Possessing all properties or qualities 
necessary for its complete state ; complete in 
all parts. (L. perfectus.) 


Perfoliate.—Formed of joints which appear to be 
strung together by a common thread. (L. per, 
and folium, a leaf.) 


Perforatz, Perforate.—(Antenne.) When a portion 
of each joint is dilated and flattened and the 
remaining portion cylindrical, appears like a 
thread on which the dilated parts are strung. 
(L. per, and foro, to bore.) 


Pergameneous.—Of a thin, tough, semi-transparent 
substance,—parchment-like. (The term is 
derived from Pergamos, in Mysia, where parch- 
ment was invented.) 


Peri-.—A Greek prefix signifying around, near. 


Pericardial, Pericardian.—Relating to the peri- 
cardium. (Gr. pert, and kardia, the heart.) 


Pericardial cells.——Small cells attached to the 
suspensory filaments and muscles of the 
circulatory system; their function is not 
exactly known. (Gr. per?, and kardia.) 


Pericardial diaphragm.—A _ delicate perforated 
membrane lining the lower surface of the peri- 
cardium. (G. pert, and kardia; dia, through, 
and phragma, an enclosure.) 


163 Per 


Pericardium.—The irregular chamber which is 
bounded above by the upper body-wall, and its 
muscles, and below by the pericardial diaphragm, 
and in which the “heart” lies. (Gr. peri, and 
kardia, the heart.) 


Periopticon.—An object of retinal structure, con- 
sisting of a series of rod-like pigmented nerve- 
cells surrounded by small ‘‘ chaplet-cells ” with 
a large nucleus, and connecting the nerve-fibres 
which pass out through the perforated mem- 
brane to the retinulee surrounding the eye-rods. 
(Gr. pert, and optikos, pertaining to the sight.) 


Peripheria.—The contour; surface. (Gr. peri, 
and phero, to bear.) 


Peripneustic.—A term given to one of the inter- 
mediate types between the holopneustic and 
apneustic tracheal systems. When the pro- 
thoracic and abdominal spiracles are open, while 
the mesothoracic pair are closed or atrophied. 
(Larvee of Coleoptera, Lepidoptera, Hymen- 
optera, Neuroptera, Mecoptera, and Trichop- 
tera.) (Gr. peri, and from pneuma air.) 


Peristeethium.—The Peristethium. That portion 
of the postpectus anterior to the insertion of the 
legs ; 1t extends laterally to the scapulee, and is 
generally connected to the pectus by a mem- 
brane (Say.) 


Peristethium. The anterior central part of the 
medipectus, lying in front of the sockets of the 
intermediate legs. (Gr. peri, and stethos, the 
breast.) 


12 


Per | 164 


~ 


Peristomium.—The oral margin or border of the 
mouth of Diptera. (Loew.) (Gr. peri, and 
stoma, the mouth.) 


Peritracheal membrane.—The ectotrachea. (Gr. 
pert and trachys ; and membrane.) 


Peritreme.—The small plate which is perforated by 
the external opening of the spiracles directly 
under the fore-wing. (Audouin.) (Gr. pert, 
and trema, a hole.) 


Peritrophic membrane.—A funnel-shaped fold 
of membrane situated on the hinder end of the 
proventriculus and enclosing its outlet, extend- 
ing back like a tube to the anus. (Gr. peri, and 
trepo, to turn.) 


Perpendicular.—At right angles to the horizon. 
(Gr. perpendiculum, a plumbline.) 


Perpendiculare.—(Head.) Observing the relations 
of the head to the thorax ; the term 7s used when 
ats longitudinal diameter forms a right angle with 
the axis of the body. , 


- Persistent.—Permanent. (L. persisto, to persist.) 


Petiolar.—Pertaining to a petiole. (L. petiolus, 
a little stalk.) 


Petiolate.—(Egg). Stalked; placed upon a stalk. 
(L. petiolus.) 


Petiole.—A stalk. (F. petiole, a foot-stalk of a 
leaf. L. petiolum, ace. of petiolus, little stalk.) 


Petiolule.—A small petiole. 


165 Phy 


Petiolus.—The footstalk ; aslender part by which 
the abdomen of many Hymenoptera is united 
to the trunk; it includes the funiculus, and 
foramen. (L.) 


Phallus.—The male organ of generation. (Gr. 
phallos.) 


Pharyngeal nerve.—Two small nerves arising from 
each side of the frontal ganglion, extending 
latero-ventrally to the lower portions of the 
pharynx. (Hammar.) (From Gr. pharunyz, 
the pharynx.) 


Pharyngeal pump.—The antlia. 


Pharynx.— The opening into the gullet ; it includes 
the epipharynx and hypopharynx. (L. from 
Gr. pharungz.) 


Phial.—A little sac to receive fluid at the will of 
the insect, by which the weight of the wing 
is increased. (Gr. phiale, a small vessel, or 
bottle.) 


Phosphorescent.—Lucid; emitting light in the 
dark. (From L. phosphorus.) 


Phragma.—The posterior margin of the prothorax 
descending in front of the alitrunk. (Gr. an 
enclosure.) 


Phylogenetic.—Pertaining to the history of the 


race. (Gr. phule, a tribe, and gennav, to bring 
forth.) 


Phytophagus.—Feeding on plants. (Gr. phyton, 
a plant and phago, to eat.) 


Pic 166 


Piceous, Piceus.—Black with a greenish tint ; the 
colour of pitch. (L. piceus, black as pitch.) 


Pigment.—The substance in which the cones or 
pseudocones of the eye are buried, it forms two 
layers, the iris pigment (iris tapetum) and the 
inner retinal pigment. (L. pigmentum, from 
pig-, root of pingo, to paint.) 


Piliferous, Piligerous.—Bearing hair ; covered with 
hair. (L. pilus, hair, and fero, and gero, to 
bear.) 


Pilose.—Covered with soft down or short hairs ; 
hairy. (L. pilus, hair.) 

Pinguis.—Naturally and proportionately plump. 
(L. fat.) 


Pinnate.—Having thorny processes, or stiff hairs. 
Branching or cleft like a feather. (L. penna, 
a feather.) 


Pinnatifid.— With winged clefts. (L. penna.) 
Pinnulate.—(L. penna.) See pinnate. 


Pitchy.—Blackish-brown ; the term is used loosely. 
(A.S. pic, and L. pix, pitch, tar.) 


Plaga.—A long spot of irregular form, and colour. 
(L. a bruise). 


Plagate.—Possessing plage. 


Plane.—A surface destitute of elevations, depres- 
sions and markings. (Fr. from Low L. plana, 
a plane.) 


167 Plu 


Planta.—The first joint of the tarsus. (L. sole of 
the foot.) 


Plantulaa—A minute accessory joint, sometimes 
attached within the claws to the apex of the 
ungula; to be seen in the stag-beetles. 
{(Diminutive of L. planta.) 


Pleurze.—Lateral plates of the segment; lateral 
equivalents of the terge.—The lateral surfaces 
of the segments. (Gr. pleura, the side). See 
Preepleura. 


Pleural.—Pertaining to the lateral surfaces of the 
segments. (Gr. pleura.) 


Pleural region.—The region separating the upper 
and ventral ares, formed by the tergites and 
sternites, of a segment. 


Pleurites.—Another term forthe pleure. (Packard.) 


Plicate.—Furnished with a fold, or folds; like a 
fan. (L. plico, to fold.) 


Plumbeus.—Lead-like in colour, of a_blue-grey 
colour. (L. plumbum, lead.) 


Plumose, Plumous.—Feather-like ; feathery ; 
resembling feathers. (L. pluma, a feather.) 


Plumiliform.—Shaped like a feather or plume. (L. 
pluma, and forma.) 


Plump.—Fleshy ; swollen ; of astout, solid nature ; 
thick; bulky. (KE, or O.L.G., M.E. plomp ; 
-plim, verb to swell out. O.L.G. plump, bulky, 
thick.) See Pinguis. 


Plu 168 


Plumulose.—When the hairs branch out laterally 
like feathers. (L. plumuda, a little feather.) 


Poculiform.—Cup-shaped. (L. poculum, cup, and 
forma, shape.) See Proculiform. 


Podeon.—The sixth segment in insects. (Gr.) 


Podical plates.—A pair of small plates situated at 
the side of the posterior ventral anus. 
(Theobald.) (L. podicus, pertaining to a foot.) 


Podotheex.—Leg-cases, that portion of the theca 
enclosing the legs. (Gr. pons, podus, a foot, and 
theca, a case.) 


Poisers.—Appendages in the place of hind wings, 
originating directly beneath the callosity of the 
metanotum. (O.F. poiser, to weigh.) See 
Halteres. 


Poison-glands.—The glands secreting the poison, 
generally two in number connected by a more or 
less simple duct to the poison-sac. 


Poison-sac.—The bag or sac for the reception of 
the poison secreted by the poison-glands. (Fr. 
poison, {rom L. potionem, acc. of potio, a draught.) 


Polar cells.— While the primitive-cell segmentation 
is still in progress, before the formation of the 
inner-layer, a ‘ polar-cell”’ is separated from 
the hinder pole of the egg. This by successive 
halving divides into eight, which after the forma- 
tion of the blastoderm, pass through it, and 
divide into two groups, taking up positions on 
either side of the hind gut, from these cells the 
eggs or sperm cells of the developing insect 
arise. (Gr. polos, a pole.) 


169 Por 


Polex.—The last dorsal segment of the abdomen. 
(Gr. polos.) 


Pollen-brushes.—The hairs situated on the 
proximal or first joint of the tarsus of bees. 
(L. very fine flour; and F. brosse, brush.) 


Pollex.—‘‘ An inch”; the width of the thumb, 
an obsolete measure for the determination of 
the length of large insects. (L. the thumb.) 


Polliniferous.—Formed for collecting the pollen 
of plants; the tarsi of many of the Hymeno- 
ptera. (L. pollen, and fero, to bear.) 


Pollinose.—Having yellow dust, like the pollen of 
flowers. (L. pollen, fine flour.) 


Politum.—Polished, shining. (L. politus, polished). 
See Nitidum. 


Poly.—Greek, many. 


Polygonal, Polygonous.—Having many angles. 
(Gr. poly, many, and gonia, an angle.) 


Polymorphous.—Having various and many forms. 
(Gr. poli, and morphe, shape.) 


Poreate.—Having several elevated longitudinal 
parallel ridges; formed in ridges. (L. porca, 
a ridge.) 


Poreate.—Possessing deep, broad — sulcations. 


(L. porca.) 


Pore.—<A minute orifice in the membranous surface 
by which fluids are exhaled or absorbed; a 
small interstice between the molecules or 
particles of bodies. (Gr. poros, a passage.) 


Por 170 


Pores.—Large isolated punctures. (Gr. poros.) 
Porose.—Possessing pores. (Gr. poros.) 


Poriform.—Resembling a pore.—(Gr. poros, and 
forma, form.) 


Porrect.—(Head.) In observing the relations of 
the head to the thorax ; the term is used when 
it projects. Extending forth horizontally. 
(L. porrigo, porrectum, to stretch forth.) 


Post.—A Latin prefix signifying after, behind. 


Post-antennal organ.—A curious and_ variably 
shaped organ situated between the eyes and 
antenne of the Collembola (Lipure). In 
Lipura maritima, it is seen to be composed of 
from seven to eight spaces or areas of colour, 
which in the young individuals amount to as 
many as twenty-two to twenty-four, and are 
arranged like the seeds of the malvaceors 
plants. (Tullberg,* Laboulbene.) (L. post, 
antenna, and Gr. ergon.) 


Post-clypeus.—The posterior part of the clypeus. 
(L. post, and clypeus.) 


Post-costal nerve.—The second principal nerve of 
the wing, and often the strongest. (L. post, 
and costa, a rib, and Gr. neuron, a nerve.) 


Post-dorsolum.—The intermediate piece between the 
mesophragma and the post-scutellum. (L. 
post and dorsum, back.) 


Post-furca.—The internal descending process of the 
metathorax. (L. post, and furca, a fork.) 


* “Om Skandinavesken Podurider,’’ Upsala, 1869, p. 14. 


hg! Pre 


Postnasus.—That part of the face immediately 
contiguous to the antenne, that lies behind the 
nasus, when distinctly marked out. (L. post, 
and nasus, the nose.) 


Post-pectus.—The underside of the posterior 
division of the alitruncus, which is divided into 
the mesostethium, parapleure, metasternum, 
post-furca, and the opercula. (L. post, and 
pectus, the breast.) 


Post-pharyngeal glands.—Two groups of finger- 
shaped salivary glands situated immediately 
behind the pharynx, and opening into the 
alimentary duct by a pair of tubular orifices. 
(L. post, pharynx, and glans, a gland.) 


Postretinal fibres.—The fibres arising from the 
facets of the compound eye and which pass into 
the ganglionic plate, which is united within by 
the chiasmatic fibres of the external medullary 
mass. (L. post, retina, and fibra, a fibre.) 


Post-scutellum.—The fourth section of the upper 
surface of the segment. (L. post, and scutum, 
a shield, plate.) 


Post-sternellum.—The fourth section of the lower 
surface of the segment. (L. post, and sternum.) 


Pra.—I[See Pre.] 


Prepleura, Pleura, Pleurella, Post pleurella.—The 
first, second, third, and fourth sections respec- 
tively of the pleura. These portions are divided 
by sutural lines, and are rarely distinguishable 
in more than one segment of an insect. (L. 
pre, and Gr. pleura, side.) 


Pre 172 


Preputium.—The large spherical muscular mass 
into which the ductus ejaculatorius passes. 


Prescutellum, Preescutum.—The plate nearest the 
head, in the supper surface of the segment 
when it is divided into four pieces. (L. pre, 
and scutellum ; and scutum.) 


Presternum.—The plate nearest the head in the 
lower surface of the segment when it is divided 
into four plates. (L. pre, and sternum.) 


Prasinous, Prosinus.—The colour of the leaves of 
leeks ; light green inclining to yellow; grass- 
green. (Gr. prason, a leek.) 


Pre-.—A Latin prefix signifying before, or prior 
in space, time, or degree. 


Prebasilaire—The term applied to the basilaire 
when it is sloped, and its anterior raised margin 
swollen into a thick callosity. (L. pre, and 
basilacris.) 

Premorse.—Having the end bitten off in appear- 


ance, or splintery. (L. pre, and morsum, to 


bite.) 


Preocular (ant. pra@oculares). (Antennz).—Inserted 
close to the front of the eyes. (L. pre, and 
oculus, an eye.) 


Primitive streak or band.—The formation of the 
embryo in an elongated thickened region of the 
blastoderm. (L. primus, first, and striga, a 
furrow, a streak.) 


Pro-.—A Latin prefix signifying before, fore, for- 
ward, or forth. 


173 Pro 


Proale.—The anterior or fore wings, arising from 
the sides of the mesothorax ; they vary greatly 
in composition, covering and form. (L. pro, 
and ala, a wing.) 


Proboscis.—A suctorial instrument for conveying 
food to the mouth. (L. proboscis, a snout.) 


Probosecis.—The oral instrument of Diptera, in 
which the ordinary trophi are replaced by an 
articulated sheath, terminated by the labella, 
and containing one or more scapella covered by 
a valve. (L.) 


Procephalic lobes.—(EKmbryol.) The two flaps 
formed by the first segments of the embryo, 
dividing ; the segments being formed by the 
primitive streak dividing by transversely im- 
pressed lines into segments. (L. pro, and Gr. 


kephale, the head.) 


Procerebral bridge.—A band uniting the two 
halves of the brain. (L. pro, and cerebrum.) 


Procerebral lobes.—The two fused nerve lobes of 
the procerebrum. 


Procerebral mass.—The mass of nerve centres, 
nerves, and ganglia constituting the procerebrum, 
they are : the procerebral lobes ; optic ganglia ; 
postretinal fibres; ganglionic plate; external 
chiasma ; external medullary mass; internal 
chiasma ; internal medullary mass ; mushroom 
bodies; procerebral bridge, and the central 


body. 


Pro 174 


Procerebrum.—The fore-brain composed of the 
procerebral mass. (L. pro, fore, and cerebrum, 
brain.) 


Process.—A projection, or any protuberance. (L. 
pro, before, and cedere, to go. Der. process, 
mod. F. proces.) 


Proctodeum.—The hind gut, comprising the small 
intestine, colon, and rectum. (L.). 


Proculiform.—Hollow and cylindrical, with a hemi- 
spherical base, the sides at the top being 
straight and not curved. 


Procumbent.—Trailing ; prostrate; lying _ flat. 
(L. pro, and cumbo, to lie.) 


Produced.—Drawn out, prolonged, extended, 
exhibited. (L. pro, and duco, to draw or 
lead.) 


Productile——Capable of being lengthened out. 
(L. pro, and ductus.) 


Prolegs.—Fleshy pediform organs, which serve 
various larve in place of legs. (L. propedes.) 


Prominent. (Head.)—In observing the relations 
of the head to the thorax ; the term is used when 
they form one plane. (L. pro, and mineo, to 
jut.) 

Promuscis.—Rostrum, proboscis; the oral instru- 


ment of “ flies.” (L. pro, and musca, a fly.) 


Promuscis.—The oral instrument of Hemiptera 
in which the ordinary trophi are replaced by a 
jointed sheath, covered above at the base by 


175 Pro 


the labrum, without labella at the end, and 
containing four long capillary lancelets, and a 
short tongue. It includes the vagina and 
scapella. (L. pro, and musca, a fly ; apparently 
the word fly is used for any insect that might 
look like a fly.) 


Prone.— When an object lies upon its belly. (M.F. 
prone—L. pronum, acc. of pronus, not erect.) 


Prone surface (Superficies)—The wnder-surface. 
Pronotum.—The upper surface of the prothorax. 
Propedes.—The fore or anterior legs. (L.) 


Propedes. (Larve).—Ventral and anal legs, or 
prolegs. (L.) See Prolegs. 


Prophragma.—A thin partition which descends 
from the anterior margin of the mesothorax 
into the cavity of the trunk and separates the 
anterior segment from the intermediate one. 
(Gr. pro, and phragma, an enclosure.) 


Propleura.—The two lateral surfaces of the pro- 
thorax. (Gr. pro, and pleura, a side.) 


Propneustic.—A term given to one of the inter- 
mediate types between the holopneustic and 
apneustic tracheal systems :—When only the 
most anterior pair of spiracles are open. (Pupa 
of Culex, Corethra, etc.) (L. pro, and Gr. 
pneuma, air.) 


Propodeon.—The fifth segment in insects. (L. 
pro, and Gr. pous, from podus, foot.) 


Pro 176 


Propodeonis scutum.—The scutum of the propo- 
deon. (L. propodeon, and scutum, a shield.) 


Propodeum.—tThe first abdominal segment, which 
in Hymenoptera exclusive of the Phytophaga, 
forms a part of the thorax. (L. pro, and Gr. 
pous, from podos, foot.) 


Propolis.—A substance formed and used by bees in 
the hives; the product of resinous substances 
of the buds of trees, etc. (Gr. pro, and polis, 
a city.) 


Propygidium.—Penultimate dorsal segment of the 
abdomen, visible in certain Histeride, etc., to 


which it isapplied. (L. pro, and Gr. pygidium.) 


Prostheca.—A subcartilaginous process attached to 
the inner side, near the base, of the mandibule ; 
seen in some of the Coleoptera. (Gr. pro, and 
theca, a case.) 


Prosternum.—The under surface of the prothorax. 
The central prominent ridge of the antepectus. 
(L. pro, and sternum.) 


Protellum.—The eleventh segment im _ insects. 
(Gr. pro, before, and from telos, the end.) 


Prothroacis cerebroida.—The second cerebroida. 
(L. pro, and thorax, and from cerebrum, a brain.) 


Prothroacis nervi dorsalis.—The two nerves 
ascending to the back from the mesothoracis 
cerebroida. (L. prothorax, and nervus, a nerve, 
and dorsum, the back.) 


177 Pro 


Prothoracis scutum.—The scutum of the proto- 
thorax. (Gr. protos, first, and thorar, and L. 
scutum, a shield.) 


Prothoracotheea.—The prothoracic-case, that por- 
tion of the theca enclosing the prothorax. 
(Gr. protos, thorax, and theca, a case.) 


Prothorax.—The second segment in insects; the 
first or anterior segment of the thorax. (L.—Gr. 
protos, first, and thorax, the breast, breast-plate, 
chest, etc.) 


Protocerebral lobes.—The head nerve lobes situated 
in front of the mouth. (Gr. protos, first ; 
cerebron, the brain; and Jobos, a lobe.) See 
Protocerebron. 


Protocerebron.—The fore brain, consisting of the 
central masses—the mushroom bodies, optic 
trunk, and lobes. (Gr. protos, first, and 
cerebron, the brain.) 


Protopodite.—The first part of the maxilla. (Gr. 
protos, first, and podos, a foot.) 


Protuberant.— Projecting ; of any irregularity of 
the surface. (L. protuberans, from protubero, 
to bulge out.) 


Proventricular valvule—The cesophageal valve.(?) 


Proventriculus.—The fore-stomach; it is very 
muscular, being lined with chitin, which is 
usually provided with numerous teeth arising 
from the folds. These folds begin in the 
cesophagus or crop, and end at the commence- 
ment of the mid-intestine. (L. pro, and 
ventriculus, the belly.) 


Pro 178 


Prozona.—The anterior portion of the pronotum 
of the Elatide. (L. pro, and zona, a belt.) See 
Melazona. 


Pruinose.—Covered with minute dust, as if frosted. 
(L. pruina, hoar-frost.) 


Prunus, Prunosus.—Reddish-blue, with a whitish 
covering, like the bloom of ripe plums. (L. 
prunus, a plum tree.) 


Pselaphotheca.—Palpi-cases, two conical processes 
arising in front of the eyes of pupe; that 
portion of the theca enclosing the palpi. (Gr. 
pselaphao, to feel (palpi-feelers), and theca, 
a case.) 


Pseudo.—A Greek prefix signifying false, or 
spurious. 


Pseudocone.—Eyes that have the four cone-cells 
filled with transparent fluid, but are not fused 
together to form one true cone. (Eyes of 
Diptera.) (Gr. pseudo, and konos, a cone.) 


Pseudonychia.—Spurious claws ; two stiff claw-like 
bristles which terminate the plantula. (Gr. 
pseudo, and onyx, the nail.) 


Pseudotetramerous.—Having apparently four 
joints, though in reality five are present. (Gr. 
pseudo, tetra, four, and meros, a part.) 


Pseudotrimerous.—Having apparently three joints, 
though in reality four are present. (Gr. pseudo, 
tri, three, and meros, a part.) 


179 Pub 


Pseudova.—Unimpregnated eggs which produce 
young; virginova. (Gr. pseudo, and L. ova, 
eggs.) 


Pterigostia.—* Wing bones,” the nervures. (Gr. 
pteri, a wing, and osteon, a bone.) 


Pteropega.—The wing-sockets, situated on the 
dorsolum. (Gr. pteron, a wing, peza, from pous, 
the foot.) 


Pterostigma.—The name given to the second costal 
cell of the wing when it is opaque. (G. ptero, 
a wing, and stigma, a mark.) 


Pterothecz.—(Pupze.) The wing cases, that portion 
of the theca enclosing the wings. (Gr. pteron, 
a wing, and theca, a case.) 


Pterygium.—Small wing-lobes seen upon the base 
of the underwings. ex. Lepidoptera. (From 
32. pteron, a wing.) 


Pterygodes.—Latreille’s term for the  tegule. 
(From Gr. pteron.) 


Pterygoid.—Wing-like. (Gr. pteron, a wing, and 
eidos, like. 


Ptilinum.—A large bladder-like organ which is 
pushed out through the frontal suture when 
the adult is going to emerge from the puparium. 


Pubescent.—Furnished with shining hairs or down. 
(L. pubes, hair, Der. pubescence, sb. due to 
pubescent-, stem of pres. pt. of pubescere, to 
arrive at puberty.) 


13 


Pul 180 


Pulmonaria.—The pulmonary _ spaces. (L. 
pulmonarius, from pulmo, a lung.) See 
Pulmonary space. 


Pulmonary space.—T'wo longitudinal soft places on 
each side of the back of the abdomen, which are 
capable of tension and relaxation, and where 
they exist, the dorsal spiracles are planted. (L. 
pulmonarius.) 


Pulverulent.—Dusty ; consisting of fine powder ; 
(L. pulverulentus, from pulvis, pulveris, dust, 
powder.) See Polinose. 


Pulvillii—Soft cushions on the underside of the 
tarsi. (L. pulvinus, a cushion.) 


Pulvinulus.—Soft balls at the ends of the tarsi. 
(L. pulvinus.) 


Puncto-striatus.—Punctured longitudinal straight 
lines. (L. pungo, punctum, to prick, and 
stria, a furrow.) 


Punctum.—A spot. (L.) 


Puncture.—A small depression on the surface, 
usually round. (L. punctura, a prick, a puncture.) 


Punctate.—Furnished with punctures. (L. punctura. 


Punctate-striate-—Rows of punctures imitating 
and taking the place of striz, opposed to 
striate-punctate, with loose punctured striz. 
(L. punctum, and stria, a furrow.) 


Punctation, Punctuation, Puncturation.—Covered 
with punctures; possessing punctures. (L. 
punctura.) 


181 Pup 


Punctiform.—Possessing a small impression or 
fovea, larger than an ordinary puncture. (L. 
punctum, a spot, and forma, form.) 


Punktsubstanz.—The fibrillar substance composing 
the calyces of the mushroom bodies. (Kenyon.) 


Puniceus.—Bright red with a violet tint. (L. red, 
reddish.) 


Pupa.—The third stage of an insect’s life; the 
chrysalis stage, the apparently torpid state 
before an insect assumes its wings. (L. pupa, 
achrysalis. L. pupa, a girl, hence undeveloped 
insect.) 


Pup adherenz.—Adherent pupe; pupe which 
hang perpendicularly with their heads downward. 
(L. pupa, and ad, and hereo, hesum, to stick.) 


Pup angulares.—Pupz possessing a process like 
a pyramid, or nose, on the back. (L. pupa, 
and angulus, an angle.) 


Pup conice.—Conical pup in contra-distinction 
to angular pupe. (L. pupa, and conicus, 
conical.) See Pup angulares. 


Pupe contigne.—Bound pupe; pupe which 
remain upright against a vertical object, and 
supported thus by a delicate filament passed 
transversely across the thorax. (L. pupa, 
and contigno, to bind.) 


Pup custodiate.—Guarded pupe; pups which 
are incased, but the cocoon remains partially 
open. (L. pupa, and custos, a keeper.) 


Pup 182 


*Pupz excarate.—Excarate or sculptured pupa; 
pupee in which the limbs of the perfect insect are 
observed to lie free, though still closely attached 
to the body. (L. pupa; ex, out, and caro, 
flesh.) See Mumize pseudonymphe. 


Pup folliculate.—Incased pupe; pupze which 
repose in cases artificially prepared by the 
larve. (L. pupa, and follis, a bag.) 


Pupz larvatze.—Masked pupze, pups whose general 
enclosure is a horny case, but upon which the 
different parts of the future insect are traced 
in lines. (L. pupa, and larva, a mask.) 


Pupe nudz.—Naked pupe; pupe which freely 
lie, hang, or are in no way fastened or attached 
in their particular element. (L. pupa, and 
nudus naked.) 


Pup2 obtectz coarctatze.—Coarctate and obtected 
pupze ; pup which are closed in a firm, egg- 
shaped, corneus case, and which do not in the 
least indicate the parts of the perfect insect. 
The surrounding case is the cried skin of the 
larva, and the true pupa lies inclosed beneath it. 
(L. pupa; ob., and tectum, to cover.) See 
Obtect pup. 


Pup subterranee.—Subterraneous pup; pup 
which pass this period of their life buried under- 
ground. (L. pupa; sub, under, and terra, the 
earth.) 


* Mumia, so called by Lamarck. 


183 Pyg 


Pupal sac.—The thin, semi-transparent membrane 
enveloping the head and thorax of the pupe of 
Anopheles maculipennis. (Nuttall and Shipley.) 
(L. pupa. and sac.) 


Puparium.—The secretionary covering of many 
Coccidee. The last larval skin which, in the 
case of Diptera, protects the pupa. (L. pupa.) 


Pupation.—The period occupied in changing from 
the larva or nymph into the imago. The third 
stage of an insect’s life; the period of histology. 
(L. pupa.) 


Pupil, Pupilla.—The central spot of the ocellus. 
(L. pwpillus.) 


Pupiparous.—Bringing forth pupe. (L. pupa, and 
pario, to bring forth.) 


Purpureal.—Purple. (Gr. purpura.) 
Purpureus.—(Gr. purpura.) See Puniceus. 


Pustule-—A point of large circumference. (L. 
pustula, a blister, pimple, ete.) 


Pustulate, Pustulosus, Pustulous.—Covered with 
pustules ; poe-lke. (L. pustuda.) 


Pygidium.—The last dorsal segment of the 
abdomen. (Gr. pygidion, dimin. from puge, the 
the rump.) 


Pygidium.—A horny chitinous organ of very 
variable shape, situated between the last dorsal 
and ventral sclerites; between the branches of 
the forceps of the Elatide. 


184 Pyg 


(Coccidee.)—The compound terminal segment 
of the Diaspine and Conchaspine ; the last 
ventral segment. (Gr. pygidion.) 


Pygofer.—The compound terminal segment of the 
abdomen of the Homoptera. 


Pyramidal, Pyramidale, Pyramidate.—Resembling a 
pyramid in shape; angular. (L. pyramis, 
a pyramid.) 

Pyramidate fascia.—An angled fascia. (L. pyramis, 
and fascia.) 


Pyriform, Pyriforme.—Pear-shaped. (L. pyrum, 
a pear, and forma.) 


Qua.—Latin adjective meaning as being. 


Quadrate.—Square.—(L. quadratus, square, from 
quatuor, four.) 


Quadri.—In composition indicates four, 7.e. quadri- 
maculate, with four spots. 


Quadricapsular.—Having four capsules. (L. 
quadri, four, and capsula, a capsule.) 


Quadridentate.—Having four teeth. (L. quadri, 
and dens, a tooth.) 


Quadrimaculate.—Possessing four macule. (L. 
quadri and macula, @, a spot.) 


Quadripartite.—Divided into four parts to the 
base (L. quadri, and pars, a part.) See 
Partite. 

Quadripinnate.—With four feather-like branches, 
or clefts. (L. quadri, and penna, a feather.) 


185 Rad 


Quadrivalvate, Quadrivalvula.—Four-valved. (LL. 
quadri, and valve, a folding-door.) 


Radial cellule-——A portion of the membrane of the 
wing, situated near the apex, included between 
the exterior margin and a nervure which 
originates at the carpus and passes, with various 
degrees of curvature, towards the apex. (From 
L. radius, a ray, and cella, a cell.) 


Radial nervure.—A radiating or cross nervure of 
the wing. (L. radius, and Gr. neuron, a nerve, 
cord.) 


Radiate.— When a dot, spot, etc., appears to throw 
off rays ; ex. the large blue area common to the 
wings of Papilio. (L. radius.) 


Radicle.—The basal joint of the antenne. (Fr. 
from L. radix, a root.) 


Radicula.—The radicle. The basal joint of the 
antenne (Say). (L. a small root.) 


Radio-medial nerve.—A transverse or cross-nervure 
of the wing connecting the radial and medial 
nerve systems. (L. radius, medius, the middle, 
and nerve.) 


Radius.—The area lying between the costal cell 
or area, and the media of the wing. (L. a ray.) 


Radius.—The first nervure of the exterior edge of 
the superior wing ; it extends from the base to 
the carpus, and is separated from the cupitus, 
by a membrane. (L.) 


Ram 186 


Ramosz.—(Antennx). When setaceous or monili- 
form, but having long branches from several of 
the joints. (L. ramosus, full of branches.) 


Ramose.—Branching; branched; __ possessing 
branches ; resembling branches. (L. ramosus.) 


Raptorial, Raptorious.—Adapted for seizing and 
devouring prey. (L. raptor, a robber, from 
rapio, to rob.) 

Re-.—A Latin prefix, signifying back. 


Receptacula ovorum.—Portion of the female 
genitalia, the receptacle holding the eggs or 
“ova. (L. receptaculum, and ovum.) 


Reclivate.—Curved in a convex, then in a concave 
line. (L. ve, and clivus, a projection, a hill.) 


Recondite.—(Aculeus.)—Concealed within © the 
abdomen, seldom exposed to view. (L. ve, and 
condo, to put together.) 


Rectate.—Straight ;  straightly upmght. (L. 
rectus, straight.) 
Rectigrade.—Larve which have sixteen legs, and 


can walk with a rectilinear body. (L. rectus, 
and gradus, a step.) See Geometre. 


Rectum.—The short dilated terminal part of the 
intestines connecting with the anus. (L.) 
See Intestines. 


Recurrent nerve.—A single median nerve cord 
arising from the caudal border of the frontal 
ganglion, extending back beneath the supra- 
cesophageal ganglion to the vagus, or ventricular 
ganglion. (L. ré, and curro, to run.) 


187 Rep 


Recurvate, Recurved.—Bent or bowed backwards. 
(L. re, and curvus, curved.) 


Recurvate.—Bowed, or bent downward. (L. re, 
and curvus.) 


Recuspine.—Having the points in a backward 
direction. (L. re, and cuspis, a point.) 


Reflex.—Bent up, opposed to deflex. (L. re, and 
flecto, flectum, to bend.) 


Reflexed.—Having raised margins. (L. re, and 
flecto, flectum.) 


Remiform.—Oar-shaped. (L. remus, an oar, and 
forma.) 


Remiped.—With oar-shaped feet; ex. aquatic 
insects whose legs serve as oars. (L. remus, 
and pes, foot.) 


Remote.—Further removed than distant ; not near, 
(L. remotus, from removeo, to remove.) 


Reniculus.—A small kidney-shaped spot of colour. 
(L. rents, a kidney.) 


Reniform.— Having the form or shape of the kidneys. 
(L. renes, kidneys, and forma form.) 


Repand.—Cut into very slight sinuations, so as to 
run in a serpentine direction; having an 
uneven sinuous margin. (L. re, and pando, to 
spread.) 


Repandous.—Bent upward; crooked. (L. re, 
and pando.) 


Rep 188 


Replicate.—Refolded, doubled back or down. 
capable of being folded back. (L. re, and plico, 
to fold.) 


Resilient.—Having the property of springing back. 
(L. resilio, to leap back.) 


Respiratory nerves.—The lateral branches arising 
from the median nerve and extending laterally 
over the nerves of the central or main nervous 
system. (L. respiro, to breathe, from re, again, 
and spiro, to blow; and nerve.) 


Resuspinate.—Upside down; horizontally reversed. 
(From L. re, and suscito, to raise.) 


Retecious.—Resembling network. (L. rete, a net.) 


Reticular.—Having the form of network. (L. 
reticulum, a little net.) 


Reticulate-—Covered with a network of lines 
or cross strie; netted; resembling network. 
(L. reticulatus, from reticulum.) 


Reticulate—(Kgg.) Sculptured. (L. reticulatus 
a net.) 


Reticulose, Reticulated.—Having a number of 
minute impressed lines which intersect one 
another like the meshesof anet. (L. retecudatus.) 


Retina.—A retiform expansion of the optic nerve 
of the eye, which receives the impressions con- 
veyed through the transparent facets, cones, and 
rods, and gives rise to vision. (L. retina, so 
called because it resembles network. Coined 
from reti—tfor rete, a net.) 


189 Ret 


Retinal.—Pertaining to the retina. (L. retina.) 


Retinaculum.—Horny movable scales with which 
the spicula are furnished, serving instead of 
muscles to prevent it being darted out too far. 
(L. a stay ; from retino, to hold back, and 
aculeus, a sting.) 


Retinula.—Elongate nerve-cells in the structure of 
the eye. (L. retin4.) 


Retracted (retractwm).—(Head.) When it is con- 
cealed as far as the brow within the thorax. 
(L. re, traho, tractum, to draw back.) 


Retractile—Capable of being produced and _ with- 
drawn. (L. retractum.) 


Retractile-—(Head.) When a concealed head can 
be pushed forwards at the will of the insect. 
(L. re, and traho, to draw.) 


Retractores ventriculi—The delicate retractor 
muscles which assist in supporting the alimen- 
tary canal. (L.) 


Retractum.—(Head.) [See Retracted.] 
Retro.—A Latin prefix signifying backwards. 


Retrorsum.—(Direction.) Backwards; in a back- 
ward direction. (L.) 


Retrose.—Backward; in a backward direction. 
(L. retro.) 


Retuse.— Possessing blunt impressions, as if beaten 
into the surface. (L. re, and from tundo, 
tusum, to beat.) 


Rev 190 


Reverse.— When an object is viewed with the anus 
towards you. (M.E. reuers (revers).—O.F. 
revers.—L. reuersus, lit. turned backwards. 
L. re-, back, and wertere, to turn.) 


Reviviscence.—The awakening from torpidity, the 
restoration from suspended animation. (L. 
reviviscens, from reviviseo, to come to life again, 
to revive.) 


Revoluted.—Rolled or curled back. (L. re, and 


from voluto, to roll.) 


Rhabdites.—The three pairs of slender non- 


articulated tubercles constituting the ovipositor.. 
(Gr. rhabdos, a rod.) 


Rhabdom.—The nerve rod supporting the apex 
of the blunt crystalline cone of the eye. (Gr. 
rhabdos.) 


Rhabdomeres.—The sections of the rhabdom. 
(From Gr. rhabdos.) 


Rhabdopoda.—The genital claspers. (Packard.) 
(Gr. rhabdos, and pod, pedis, a foot.) 


Rhinarium.—The nostril-piece ; the space between 
the anterior margin of the nasus and the labrum. 
This is remarkable insome Lamellicorn beetles, 
as Anoploynathus, Leach. (Gr. rhis, rhinos, 
the nose.) 


Rhomboid, Rhomboidal.—Quadrilateral with the 
sides equal, but two opposite angles acute and 
two obtuse. Lozenge-shaped. (Gr. rhombos, 
from rhembo, to whirl round.) See Lozenged. 


191 Ros 


Rigid.—Hard, which does not bend or yield to 
pressure; stiff, not pliant; inflexible. (L. 
rigeo, to be stiff.) 


Rimose, Rimous.—Chinky, resembling the bark of 
a tree. Having a number of minute, narrow, 
and nearly parallel excavations, which run into 
each other. (L. 77mosus, from rima, a cleft.) 


Rivose.-—--When furrows do not run in a parallel 
direction, and are rather sinuate ; marked with 
sinuate furrows. (L. rivus, a stream.) 


Rod (of the eye).—[See Rhabdom.] 


Rorulent.—Like dew-drops. (L. ros, roris, dew.) 
See Polinose, and Pulverulent. 


Rorulent.—Covered with a bloom, like that of a 
plum, which may be rubbed off. (L. rorulentus, 
from ros, roris.) 


Rosaceous.—(Scent.) A smell of roses. (L. rosa, 
a rose.) 


Roseous, Roseus.—Rose colour. (L. rosa.) 


Rostellum.—The oral instruments of Pediculus, 
and some other Aptera, in which the ordinary 
trophi are replaced by an exarticulate retractile 
tube, which controls a retractile siphuncle. 
It includes the tubulus, and siphunculus. 
(From L. rostrum, a beak, mouth.) 


Rostral filaments.—The four hair-like processes 
which together form the sucking-tube or 
sucking mouth of the Coceide. (L. rostrum, and 
filum, a thread.) 


Ros 192 


Rostrate.—In the form ofarostrum. (L. rostrum.) 


Rostrulum.—The oral instrument of Aphaniptera 
(Pulex L.), in which the ordinary trophi are 
replaced by a bivalve beak, between the valves 
of which there appear to be three lancets. It 
includes the lamine, scalpella, and lingula. 
(L. rostrum.) 


Rostrum.—Prolongation of the head between the 
eyes to a nose or beak. (L. a mouth.) See 
Proboscis. 


Rostrum.—The upper part of the mouth of 
Coccidee, from which spring the rostral filaments. 


(L.) 
Rotative, Rotatory.—(Motion.) When capable of 
turning wholly round, describing a circle. (L. 


rota, a wheel.) 


Rotundate-——When the margins pass gradually 
into each other, and do not meet in sharp angles. 
(L. rotundus, round.) 


Ruber.—Clear unmixed red. (UL. red.) 


Rubescent.— Possessing a rose-coloured pubescence. 
(From L. rubeo, to be red.) 


Rubineous.—(Splendour.) The red splendour of 
the ruby. (From L. ruber.) 


Rubrican.—A bay or gray-black colour. (L. ruber, 


red.) 


Rudimentary.— Undeveloped. (L. rudimentum.) 


Rufescent.—Somewhat reddish. (L. rufus, red.) 


193 Sal 


Rufose, Rufous.—A brownish-red colour. (L. 
rufus.) 


Rufus.—Coppery in colour. (L.) 


Rugged.—When a surface shows a raggedness or 
roughness due to mucros, spines, and tubercles 
being intermixed. (M.E. rugged.) 


Rugose, Rugous.—Wrinkled; full of wrinkles. 
(L. rugosus, full of wrinkles, adj. from ruga, a 
wrinkle.) 


Rugosissimus.—Very uneven. (I..) 
Rugulose.—Slightly wrinkled. (L. rvga.) 


Rumules.—Teat-like fleshy protuberances obsery- 
able on the bodies of various larvee. (Kirby 
and Spence. (L. ruma, a teat.) 


Rursus.—(Direction).—Backwards. (L. rursus, 


backwards.) See Antrursum. 


Rypophagous.—Filth-eating. (Gr. rupos, filth, 
and phago, to eat.) 


Sac.—A small bag or bladder. (L. saccus, a bag.) 


Saecate.—Gibbous, or inflated towards one end. 
(L. saccus.) . 


Sagitte.—The inner pair of forceps of the Hymen- 
opterous genitalia, lying between the stipites. 
(L. sagitta, an arrow.) 

Sagittate-—Shaped like the head of an arrow. (L. 
sagitta.) 

Salebrous, Salebrosa.—Rough, rugged. (L. salebra, 
an uneven road.) See Rugged. 


Sal 194 


Saliva.—Fluid excreted by the salivary glands. 
(L.) 


Salivary glands.—A thin, leaf-like mass composed 
of two large lobes, and a thin, smaller lobe 
situated on either side of the gullet. (L. saliva, 
the fluid excreted by the salivary glands, and 
glans, an acorn.) 


Salivary nerves.—T'wo thread-like nerves arising 
from the caudo-lateral border of the cesophageal 
ganglion, entering the prothorax, where they 
turn and branch off to the sides. (L. saliva, 
and nervi, a nerve.) 


Saltatorial.—Adapted for leaping ; possessing the 
ability to leap. (L. saltatorius, from saltator, 
a dancer.) 


Saltatorial appendage.—The great appendage, 
attached, in most cases, to the penultimate 
segment of the Collembola, and consists of a 
basal segment, and two branches, which are 
sometimes two-jointed, and sometimes of a 
single piece only. The appendage is usually 
turned forwards, the basal portion reaching as 
far forward as the catch. 


Sanguine.—Having the colour of blood. (L. 
sanguis, blood.) 


Sanguineous.—Blood-like in colour. (L. sanguis.) 


Sanguinivorus.—Subsisting on blood. (L. sanguts, 
and voro, to devour.) 


195 Sea 


Saprophagous.—Feeding on putrid animal and 
vegetable substances. (Gr. sapros, putrid, and 
phago, to eat.) 


Saprophitic.—Living on dead or decaying matter. 
(Gr. sapros.) 


Saprophyte.—That which lives on dead or decaying 
vegetable matter. (Gr. sapros, and phyton, a 
plant.) 


Sarcolemma.—The thin transparent sheath-like 
membrane surrounding the muscle-fibres. 
(Newman.) (Gr. sarz, flesh, and Jemma, a scale, 


that which is peeled off.) 


Sarcophagous.—Feeding on flesh. (Gr. sarz, and 
phago, to eat.) 


Saturatus.—Implies a colour is deep and _ full. 
(L. satur, full.) 


Scabbed, Scabby.—Possessing roughnesses ; rough. 
(L. scabo, to scratch.) 


Scaber.—Covered with an irregular rugosity. (A.S. 
sceb; from L. scabo, to scratch.) 


Seabrous.—With small raised dots; rough, like a 
file; rough, rugged; having sharp points. 


(L. scabo.) 


Scale.—The secretionary covering of various coccids. 
Used also as a general term for scale-insects. 
Seales.—Small thin variously shaped mem- 
braneous or horny outgrowths, or modifications 
of the cuticle. The scales of the Culicide vary 
much in shape, and are of great importance, 

14 


Sca 196 


for the classification of this group of Diptera is 
chiefly based upon the differences of the 
scales, and their positions upon the body. 
(M.E. scale—O.F. escale.—O.H.G. scala.— A.S. 


scealu, scalu, shell, husk, scale.) 


Scalloped.—Having the edge marked by rounded 
hollows, without intervening angles. (M.E. 
skalop.—O.F. escalope, ashell. Allied to SCALE. 
Der. verb. to cut an edge into scallop-like 
curves.) 


Scalpella.—The lancets, a pair of instruments 
more slender than the cultelli, found in the 
structure of the haustellum. (L.  scalpellum, 
dimin. of scalprum, a knife.) 


Scansorial. Adapted to climbing. (L. scansum, 
to climb.) 


Seape, Scapus.—The first joint of the antenne, 
it includes the bulbus. (L. scapus, a shaft.) 


Seapella.—The lancets; four pieces adapted for 
perforating the food, which, when united, form 
a tube for sucking purposes. The upper pair 
represent the mandibule, and the lower the 
maxille. (L.) 


Scaphiform.—Boat-shaped. (Gr. skaphe, anything 
hollow (skaph—boat-shaped), and forma, shape.) 


Seapulae, Scapularia.—Small plates situated on 
either side of the peristethium exteriorly, and 
which are sometimes soldered to it. (Knoch.) 
(L. scapula, the shoulder plate or blade.) 


197 Sco 


Scelerites, Sclerites——The chitinous plates constitu- 
ting the hard surface of an insect. The 
chitinous plates into which certain parts of the 
external skeleton (eg., the mesonotum of 
Coleoptera) are divided. (Gr. skeleros, hard.) 


Sclerites of the hypopharynx.—(Hymenoptera). 
Two narrow sclerites extending from the oral 
groove, close to the articulation of the cardines, 
down to the base of the mentum, passing between 
the maxille, to whose basal membrane they 
appear to be attached. (Saunders.) 


Scolopal body.—The chitinous cone or rod secreted 
by the chordotonal organs and retained in the 
crytoplasm. (Scale). 


Scopa.—A small brush-like appendage, or variation 
of the surface markings ; the hair of the brush 
being short, stiff, and of equal length. (L. a 
brush, broom.) 


Scopate.—Covered with scopxe.—(L. scopa, a brush 
or broom.) 


Scopiferous.—(Antennz.) Possessing a thick brush 
of hair upon some place or part of its structure. 
(L. scopa ; and fero, to bear.) 


Scopiform.—In the form of a brush. (L. scopa, 
and forma, form.) 


Scopiped.—When the pulvilli or pulvinuli are so 
covered with hair as to appear brush-like. 
(L. scopa, and pes, a foot.) 


2) 


Sco 198 


Scoriaceous.—Ash-like in colour ; when the granula- 
tions of the surface resemble ashes. (Gr. scoria, 
dross, ashes.) 


Scorpionide.—A family of Arachnoida, including 
scorpions, etc. (F.—L.—Gr.) (F. scorpion.— 
L. scorpionem, acc. of scorpio, the same as 
scorpius.—Gk. skorpios, a scorpion.) 


Seriptus.—Lettered, marked, with characters 
resembling letters. (L. from seribo, to write.) 


Scrobes.—Lateral furrows on the rostrum, holding 
the base of the antenne, when at rest. (L. 
scrobs, a trench.) 


Scrobiculate.—Pitted ; having the surface covered 
with hollows; with deep round pits. (L. 
scrobiculus, a little ditch.) See Foveolate. 


Scrotiform.—Purse-shaped. (L. scrotum, a bag, a 
purse, and forma, shape.) 


Sculpture.—Modifications of the surface. (L. 
sculpo, sculptum, to carve.) 


Sculpture.—(Pupe.) (L. sculpo, sculptum.) See 
Pupz exaratee. 


Scuta.—Corneous plates on the segments. (L. 
scutum, a shield.) 


Scutate.—Covered with large flat scales. (L. 
scutatus, from scutum.) 


Scutcheon.—The scutellum. (From L. scutwm.) 


Scutel.—The scutellum (Say.) (L, scutwm.) 


199 Sec 


Scutellary.—Pertainmg to the scutellum. (L. 
scutum.) 


Scutellate.—Divided into surfaces like little plates 
(L. scutella, a salver.) 


Scutellum.—The third section of the upper surface 
of a segment, very prominent on the thorax, 
especially in Coleoptera of which it is the only 
visible portion of the mesonotum. (From L. 
scutum.) 


Scutiform.— Having the form of a shield, or plate. 
(L. scutum, and form, shape.) 


*Scutum.—The upper or dorsal surface of a segment. 
The plate lying between the prescutum and 
scutellum on the upper surface of a segment when 
it is divided into four pieces. (L. a shield.) 


Second maxille.—The labium. 


Secretion.—Matter produced by the various glands 
of the body. (L. secretus, set apart; pp. of 
secernere, to separate. Der. secrete, verb. from 
L. secretus ; secret-ion.) 


Secretionary covering.—That part of a Diaspid 
p i 
puparlum covering the exuvie. 


Sectores coconis.—A cocoon-breaker, of the attacine 
moths, a pair of large stout spines, one on each 
side of the thorax, at the base of the forewings, 
and provided with five or six teeth on the 
cutting edge. (L. sector, a cutter, and coconis.) 


Securiform.—Having the form of an axe. (L. 
securis, an axe, and forma, form.) 


* The scutellum of some authors. 


Sec 200 


Securi palpata.—Palpi which have the last joint 
broadly trianguiar, and which hangs by a point 
to the preceding joint. (L. securus, from se, 
free, and cura, care, and palpa, a jointed feeler). 


Segmentation nucleus.—The nucleus formed by 
the union of the male pronucleus with the 
female pronucleus. (L. segmentum, a piece cut 
off,—secare, to cut; nucleus, from nuz, a nut.) 


Segments.—The great inosculating joints of the 
body. (L. segmentum, from secare, to cut.) 


Semen.—The seed or prolific fluid of males ; sperm ; 
seminal fluid or spermatozoa ; the secretion of 
the testes. (L. seed.) 


Semi.—A Latin prefix signifying half. 


Semiglobate, Semiglobose.—Having the form of 
half a globe; semi-spherical. (L. sem, half, 
and globus, a globe, sphere, etc.) Semiglobosum, 
Hemispherical, 


Seminal tubes, or pouches.—Several tubes or 
pouches situated at the end of the vas deferens. 
(L. semen, seed.) 


Seminal vesicles.—[See Sperm vesicles. | 


Septum.—A division separating two cavities. 
(L. an inclosure.) 


Septula.—The lesser ridges and partitions raised 
on the surfaces of the metaphragma, and 
on those of other parts of the cavities of 
the trunk for the attachment of muscles. (L.) 


201 Ses 


Seriaceous.—Possessing a silk-like gloss, usually 
due to the presence of minute dense hairs. 
(L. sericum, silk.) 


Sericate, Sericatus, Sericeous.—Covered with soft, 
short, thick, silky down, resembling silk or satin, 
insplendour. (L. sericum.) See Holosericeous. 


Serosa.—The outer membrane continuous with 
the blastoderm which protects the developing 
embryo. (From L. serum.) 


Serrate, Serrulate-—Notched on the edge like a 
saw. (L. serra, a saw.) 


Serriform.—Saw-like ; possessing notches, markings, — 
etc., like the teeth of a saw. (L. serra, and 
forma.) 

Serrulate-—Finely serrate, having very minute 
teeth or notches. (L. serra.) 


Sesqui.—A Latin prefix signifying a whole and a 
half. 


Sesquialter.—One and a half. (L.) 


Sesquialterous ocellus.—An eye of colour with a 
smaller one near it, which is called sequiocellus. 
(LL. sesqui, and alter, another.) 


Sesquialterous fascia.—When both wings are tra- 
versed by a continued fascia. (L. sesqut ; 
alter, and fascia.) 


Sesquiocellus.—A large ocellus including a smaller 
one.—(L. sesqui, and ocellus, an eye.) 


Sesquitertial—Occupying the fourth part. (L. 
sesqui, and tertius, third.) 


Ses 202 


Sesquitertious fascia—When a wing or elytrum 
contains a fascia, and the third of a fascia. 
(L. sesquz, and tertius, third, and fascia.) 


Sessile-—Without a notch, or stalk. (L. sessilis, 
that stands firmly.) 


Seta.—A long outstanding bristle or hair. (L. a 
bristle.) 


Setaceous.—Gradually tapering to the tip. Like 
a bristle. (L. seta.) 


Setiferous, Setiform, Setigerous, Setose.—Set with, 
or bearing sete. 


Setiform.—Bristle-shaped. (L. seta, and form, 
shape.) 


Setiformis.—When the central lobe of a  trifid 
lingula is very long, and appears to resemble a 
bristle. (L. seta, and forma.) 


Setigerae.—(Antenne.) When the basal joints 
are large, and the remainder form into a kind 
of bristle. (L. seta, and gero, to bear.) 


Setulose.—With truncated sete. (Dimin. of L. 
seta.) 


Shadow.—(M.E. shade, shadwe.) See Umbra. 


Shagreened.—Covered with closely set roughnesses 
or unevennesses, like a shark’s teeth, giving the 
appearance of rough-grained leather. (F.— 
Turkish. F. chagrin. This leather was orig. 
made of the skin of the back of the horse. 
Turk. saghri, saghri, shagreen.) 


203 Sim 


Shank.—The tibia (Dan. shank. Swed. shank, a 
bone of the leg. Der. skink.) See Tibia. 


Sheath.—An organ generally pertaining to the 
instrumenta suctoria. (A.S. sceath.) 


Shellac.—A secretion formed by insects (coccide) 
which is of a glutinous nature. Valuable in 
the manufacture of hats. Used for varnishes, 
sealing wax, lacquer work, etc. (A.S. sced/, and 
Pers. lac. 


Sigma.—The name of the Greek letter >, og, s, 
equal to the English 8. 


Sigmoidal.—S-shaped, curved like the Greek sigma. 
Lanceolate and concave on one side at the base, 
and on the other side at the apex. (Gr. sigma, 
and eidos, like.) 


Signatures.—Markings (of colour chiefly) upon a 
surface, resembling in some degree letters and 
characters. (L. signatura, from signo, to mark, 
sign, etc.) 


Signate.—Marked with signatures.—(L. siqno.) 


Simple.—(Antenne.) The term used when a 
capitate antenne is so formed by one joint only. 
[See Compound in contra-distinction.] (L. 
simplex, one fold, from semel, once, and plico 


to fold.) 


Simple (simplex) —With no unusual addition or 
modification. 


Simple ocellus._-When the eye of colour consists 
only of an iris and pupil. (L. semplex and 
ocellus.) 


Sin 204 


Sinciput.—The middle head or frons. Nitzch’s 


term for the frons. (L. semi, half, and caput, 
the head.) 


Sinuate.—Having large curved breaks in the margin 
resembling bays. (L. sinus, a hollow, a bay, 
etc.) 


Sinuate.—Slightly waved. (L. sinus.) 


Sinuato-undulate-——When fasciz, strige, lines, 
etc., curve into obtuse sinuses. (L. simwo, to 
bend, curve, and wndula, dimin. of unda, a 
wave.) 


Sinuatus.—Sinuate ; a margin with a rounded 
incision. (L. sinus.) 


Sinus.—A hollow, a bay, a cavity; a fistula, a 
groove. A curved break in an_ otherwise 
straight margin. (L.) 


Siphon.—The respiratory tube of the mosquito 
larve. It is a more or less simple tube, but 
varies considerably in shape, according to the 
larvee.—T wo trachea run through the siphon and 
and feed the main tracheal system of the body ; 
the end being provided with valved and 
guarded openings. (Gr. siphon, a tube.) 


Siphuncles.—The cornicles. 


Siphunculus.—The siphuncle ; the real instrument 
of suction, which when unemployed is retracted 
within the tubulus. (Gr. s¢phuncule, dimin. of 
siphon.) 


Siphunculate.— Possessing a siphon, or tube, as a 
valve. (Gr. s¢phon.) 


205 Spe 


Smaragdinus, Smaragdine.—An intensely bright 
gold-green colour, like the emerald in colour. 
(L. smaragdus, emerald.) 


Solea.—The sole, the underside of the tarsus; it 
includes the pulvilli. (I. the sole of the foot.) 


Solenaria.—The two lateral sub-cylindrical air-tubes 
of the antlia. (Gr. solen, a pipe, or tube.) 


Solid.—One mass, having no vacant interstices. 


(Ii. solidus.) 
Somite.—A segment. 


Sparsate, Sparse.—Scattered ; spread irregularly, 
and at a distance from each other. (L. sparsus, 
from spargo, to scatter.) 


Spatha.—Organs of the Hymenopterous female 
genitalia, which lie over the base of the stipites 
and the sagitte, and between which the intro- 
mittent organ is inserted. (L. a broadsword.) 


Spathulate.——Narrow and flat at the base and 
enlarged towards the apex. (L. spatha.) 


Sperm vesicles.—-The seminal vesicles; vessels 
containing the spermatozoa. (Gr. sperma, 
seed, and L. vesica, a bladder.) 


Spermatheca.—A more or less heart-shaped pro- 
tective sac or pouch, situated upon the dorsal 
wall of the vagina and opening by a narrowish 
neck into the oviduct; it functions as a 
protective case for the semen. (Gr. sperma, 
and theca, a case.) 


Spe 206 


Spermatheca. The outer covermg membrane of 
the spermatozoa. (Gr. sperma, and _ theca.) 


Spermatoblasts, Spermatids.—Sperm-cells formed 
by the spermatocytes dividing into two and 
then four. (Gr. sperma, and blastos, a bud.) 


Spermatocysts.—The hollow globes formed by the 
spermatospores dividing. (Gr. sperma, and 
kystis, a bladder.) 


Spermatocytes.—The sperm mother-cells lying in 
the spermatocysts. (Gr. sperma and kystis). 


Spermatogonium.—The primordial germ cell from 
which the spermatozoa arise and which contains 
a large and pale nucleus and a dark body (the 
accessory nucleus of Butschli). The sperma- 
togonia (spermatospores) are converted into 
spermatocysts, which divide into spermatocytes, 
these last divide and form the spermatids which 
directly transform into spermatozoon or sperma- 
tozoa. 


Spermatospores.—Germinal cells lining — the 
chambers of the testes. (Gr. sperma, and 
sporos, a spore.) 


Spermatozoa.—The active sperm-cells formed by 
the spermatids escaping through the split wall 
of the spermatocyst. (Gr. sperma, seed, and 
zoa, animals.) See Spermatozoon. 


Spermatozoon.—A_ single, small, active, male 
sperm-cell. (Gr. sperma and zoon.) 


Sphaericum.—Spherical. (L. sphaera, a round 
body, sphere, etc.) See Globose. 


207 Spi 


Spherulate.—Having one or more rows of minute 
tubercles. (Gr. sphaira, a ball.) 


Sphineter.—A more or less circular muscle which 
opens and shuts any orifice round which it is 
placed. (Gr. sphingkter, that which binds 
tight.) 


Spicula.—The sting darts. (L. sting.) 


Spine.—A fine, long, rigid, pointed process. (L. 
spina, a thorn.) 


Spinneret.—(Larva). A tube-like organ obliquely 
truncated at its apex arising from the anterior 
portion of the labium, and composed of several 
alternately corneous and membranous slips. 
It is through this tube that a clammy liquid 
passes, which has been secreted by two granular 
organs for the preparation of the silk which can 
be spun into thicker or thinner filaments at the 
will of the larva, by the power it possesses of 
distending or contracting the cavity of the tube. 
Some larvee such as those of some Coleoptera 
and Dictyotoptera, do not possess this organ, 
but do possess an aparatus for spinning at the 
anus. (A.S. spinnan, to draw out threads, to 
spin.) 


Spinnerets.—(Coccidx.)—Organs concerned in the 
emission of matter of which the puparia and 
ovisacs are composed. (Newstead.) (A.S. 
spinnan.) 


Spinnerettes.— The spinning organs of Araneina 
(Spiders). They are four to six fairly large 
processes situated below the anus and beset with 


Spi 208 


a larger or smaller number of short, fine tubes ; 
at the apex of each is the aperture of a silk 
gland, which hes in the abdomen. These 
spinning glands may vary considerably in 
structure even in the same insect, and may give 
rise to different secretions. (A.S. spinnan.) 


Spinous.—Armed with spines. (L. spina, a thorn.) 


Spinous-radiate.—Beset with spines in a_ circle. 
(L. spina.) 


Spinulze.—Spinous processes at the base of the tibia 
in Hymenopterous insects. (L. spinula, dimin. 
of spina, a spine, a thorn.) 


Spinules.—Small, fine, scale-like structures which 
occur on the thickened veins of the wings of 
numerous insects. Minute spines. (L. spinula.) 


Spiracles.—Breathing apertures occurring at intervals 
along the sides of insects, and which communicate 
with the air tubes or ¢rachee. The number of 
spiracles is generally eighteen, nine on each side, 
but the number is not uniform. The names 
depend wholly on the segment in which they 
happen to be situated ; ex. the right spiracle of 
the prothorax is prothoracis spiraculum dextrum. 
The spiracles vary greatly in form, position, 
and number. (L. spiritus, breath, from spiro, 
to breathe.) 


Spiracula antepectoralia.—A pair of spiracles fixed 
in the membrane that connects the antepectus 
with the medipectus. (L. spiritus ; ante, before, 
and pectus, the breast.) 


209 Spu 
Spiraculz.—The spiracles. (L.) 


Spiral Tongue.—The sucker of Lepidoptera; the 
third form of a suctorial mouth. (L. spiritus ; 
A.S. tunge, the tongue.) 


Spiritrompe.—Latreille’s term for a spiral tongue. 


Splendent.—Shining, coloured; possessing a 
metallic lustre. (L. splendeo, to shine.) 


Split (capitum fissum).—(Antenne.) When the 
joints upon one side are divided as by incisures. 
(Apparently coimed from M. Dut. splitten, to 
split.) 


Spoile-—The cast skin. (L. spolium, the skin of 
an animal.) 


Spungeous, Spongiose.—Spongy; sponge-like ; 
somewhat elastic in‘substance. (L. spongia, 
a sponge.) 


Spongiform.—Resembling a sponge; soft and 
porous. (L. spongia, and forma, like.) 


Spur.—A spine that is not a process of the cuticle, 
but implanted in it. (A.S. spura.) 


Spurious ocellus.—A circular spot of colour without 
any defined iris or pupil. (L. spurius, of 
illegitimate birth.) 


Spurious suture.—An impressed line which resembles 
a suture, but does not divide the crust. (L. 
spurius, and suture, from suo, to sew.) 


Squamez.—Scales. (L.) 


Spu 210 


Squamate, Squamose, Squamulose, Squamulate, 
Squamosus.—Covered with  squame.—(L. 
squama, a scale.) 


Squama palpifere-—The third piece constituting 
the maxilla, which is a corneous scale, at the 
anterior margin of which the palpus is inserted, 
and which forms beneath, the case or covering 
of the maxilla. (L. squama, and palpi; and 
fero, to bear.) See Exopodite. 


Squamopygidium.—A term sometimes used to the 
anal processes, chiefly of the Elatide. (L. 
squama, and Gr. pygidion, the pygidium.) 


Squamule.—A small raised lump or tubercle at the 
base of each fore-wing. (Dimuin. of L. squama.) 


Squarrose, Squarrous.—Ragged; full of loose 
scales; cut into. Lacinize that are elevated 
above the plane of the surface, and which are 
cut into. Consisting of rough scales. (L. 
squarrosus, scurty.) 


Stellate, Stellated.—Resembling a star; possessing 
a star-shaped organ; star-shaped; with four 
or five radiating lines. (L. stella, a star.) 


Stemmata.—The eyelets; two, or three convex, 
crystalline, simple eyes, observable in the frons 
or vertex, or common to both. Ocelli. (From 
Gr. stemma, anything that crowns.) 


Stem-mother.—The agamic female, which hatches 
from the pseudova of Aphids in the spring, and 
from which the summer generations arise. 
(M.E. stem, and moder.) 


211 Sti 


Stercoraceous.—Inhabiting dung. (L. _ stercoris, 
dung.) 


Sterne.—Ventral plates; ventral equivalents of 
the tergee. (From L. sternum, the breast bone.) 


Sternellum.—The third section of the lower surface 
of segments of insects. (From L. sternum.) 


Sternites.—Another term for the sterne. (Packard.) 
(From L. sternum.) 


Sterno-rhabdites.—The elements or tubercles seen 
in Hymenopterous larvee, which are destined 
to form the ovipositor. (Lacaze-Duthiers.) 
(From L. sternum, and Gr. rhabdos, a rod.) 


Sternum.—The inferior or ventral surface of a 
segment. (L. the breast bone.) 


Sternum collare.—The collar-bone, a prominent 
narrow portion in the underside of the jugulum. 
Cartilago ensiformis. (L. sternum, and collare, 
collar.) 


Sternum pectorale.—The breast-bone, a prominent 
carina situated on the breast. (Knoch.) (L. 
sternum, and pectus pectoris, the breast.) 


Stethidium.—The term used by [Illiger, Bouche, 
and others for the thorax. (Derived from Gr. 
stethos, the breast.) 


Stigma.—A darkened spot upon the anterior margin 
of the upper wings, being an incrassated portion 
of the costal nerve. The term is sometimes used 
for spiracle. (L.) 

15 


Sti 212 


Stigma metathoracis.—The metathoracic spiracle 
situated on each side of the metanotum, and 
in front of the halteres or poisers. (L.) 


Stigmata.—Apertures in the body communicating 
with the trachea. (L. stigma, a mark by 
puncture.) 


Stigmatic.—Pertaining to the stigma. 


Stilt prolegs.—Prolegs which are unnaturally long 
and elevate the insect. (M.E. stite, and prolegs.) 


Stink glands.—In connection with the skin, there are 
frequently skin-glands; of these may be men- 
tioned the stink-glands on the ventral side of 
the thorax, in Hemiptera; the anal-glands of 
the Carabide ; the wax-glands of Aphidze and 
of Cocci. Some are gland-cells, some true 
glands, and sometimes they are represented by 
simple, flat, thickened portions of the epidermis 
(wax glands of bees). (A.S. stincan.) See 
Coxal-, Foetid-, Anal-, Metameric-glands, and 
Osmeteria. 


Stipes.—The second or distal joint of the proto- 
podite. The second piece which with the cardo 
constitutes the two-jointed basal portion of the 
maxille in the mouth of the coackroach. (L. 
a stock, or trunk.) 


Stipites.—The outer pair of forceps of the Hymen- 
opterous genitalia; they arise from a basal 
ring called the cardo. (L. st¢pes, a trunk.) 


Stomach (ventriculus)—The pouch which receives 
the food from the gullet, and digests it, passing 
it to the intestines with which it is united at 


213 Sto 


its posterior extremity. The stomach varies 
greatly in its form, both of its main cavity and 
of the numerous appendages with which it is 
occasionally furnished. It is termed simple or 
simplex when it is a mere continuation of the 
gullet in an enlarged form, being slightly 
constricted at the union with the gullet, and 
more so at its junction with the intestines, where 
an elastic ring is placed, which, when con- 
tracted, nearly closes the aperture. It is said 
to be double, or duplex, when it is divided into 
two distinct portions, one preceding the other. 
It is triple, or triplex, when it possesses three 
separate divisions following each other longi- 
tudinally ; it sometimes, but rarely, has four 
divisions. It is called compound or compositus, 
when it throws off two or more minor stomachs, 
or ceca, resembling little purses at or near its 
union with the gullet; these are particularly 
observable in the voracious herbivorous insects. 
(Gr. stomachos, from stoma, a breathing pore.) 


Stomatotheea.—The mouth-case, that portion of 
the theca enclosing the mandibles and palpi. 
(Gr. stoma, and theca, a case.) 


Stomodz2um.—The fore-gut, comprising the gullet, 
crop, and gizzard. (From Gr. stomachos, the 
gullet.) 


Stomogastrie nerves.—Two parallel cords arising 
from the vagus ganglion, feeding the alimentary 
canal, on the route to their termination in the 
mid-intestine. (Gr. stoma, and gaster, the 


belly.) 


Sto 214 


Stomogastric nervous system.—[See Vagus System. ] 


Stramineus.—Pale yellow, straw-like in colour. 
(L. of straw.) 


Strangulate.—Strongly constricted, and contracted, 
forming a waist. (L.  strangulatus, from 
strangulo, to strangle.) 


Stria.—An impressed line or scratch ; the term is 
rarely used for an elevated line. (L. a furrow.) 


Striate——Furnished with striae. (L. stria.) 


Striate-punctate.—Possessing loose punctured 
striae. (L. stria, and punctum, a puncture.) 
See Punctate-striate. 


Stridulation.—Noise produced by the friction of 
one surface upon another. (L. strideo, to grate 
or creak.) 


Stridulatory.—Connected with stridulation. (L. 
strideo.) 


Striga.—A transverse band. (L.) 


Strigate, Strigose, Strigous.—Possessing  strige. 
(L. striga.) 


Strigilis—A deep sinus near the base of the palma ; 
in some Hymenoptera it is often pectinate. 
(L. a scraper.) 


Strigose.—Scratched, or lined. (L. stria.) 
Strio-punctate.—{See Punctate-striate. ] 
Striole-—A rudimentary stria. (From L. séria.) 


Striolate.—Furnished with rudimentary  stria. 
(L. stria.) 


215 Sub 


Stupeous, Stupose.—Full of matted filaments ; 
covered with long, loose scales resembling tow. 
(L. stuppa, tow.) 


Stupulose.—Covered with coarse decumbent hairs. 
(L. stuppa.) 


Style-—A pointed process. (L. stilus, a pointed 
instrument.) 


Styles.—Rigid, exarticulate, long, narrow anal 
organs.—(L. stzlus.) 


Stylose.—Furnished with a style. (L. stdus.) 
Styliform.—Like a style. (L. stilus and forma, form.) 


Stylus.—The outer sheath of the genital armature 
of the male coccids. Another term given to the 
ovipositer, when it is not a boring apparatus— 
Terebella. (L.) 


Sub.—A Latin prefix signifying under, extensively 
used to express a subordinate degree, or 1m- 
perfect state of quality. 


Subacute.—Moderately acute. (L. sub, and from 
acuo, to sharpen.) 


Subaduneate.—Somewhat hooked or curved. (L. 
sub, ad, to, and uneus, a hook.) 


Subanal lamine.—Heymon’s term for the podical 
plates. (L. sub, anus, and lamina, a plate.) 


Subcordate.—Heart-shape ; resembling somewhat 
the shape of a heart. (L. sub, and cor, the 
heart.) 


Sub 216 


Sub-costal nervure or nerve.—The radiating or 
cross nervure of the wing. (L. sub, and costa, 
a rib.) 


Subcostal nerves.—Nerves arising from the under- 
side of the post-costal nerve, or from each other, 
called the first, second, third, etc., in order of 
their occurrence. (L. sub, and costa, a rib.) 


Subcutaneous.—Placed under the skin; applied 
to parasitic larvee which feed under the skins of 
their hosts, and to those which feed in the inner 
tissues of plants, leaves, etc. (L. sub, and from 
cutis, the skin.) 


Suberoded.—(Wings.) Somewhat indented. (L. 


sub, and erosus, from erodo, to gnaw.) 


Suberouse.—Cork-like, somewhat resilient in 
substance. (L. suber, cork). 


Suberose.— Having the appearance of being gnawed. 
(L. sub, and erodo, erosus, to gnaw off.) 


Subfacies.—The subface; the lower surface or 
underside of the head. It includes the lora 
and jugulum. (L. swb, and facies, aspect.) 


Subgalea.—A portion of the mouth-parts, situated 
at the base of the stipes, and bounded on the 
inner side by the lacina of the maxilla, and on 
the outer side by the palpiger of the maxilla. 
(L. swb, and galea, a helmet.) 


Subgeneric.—Pertaining to a sub-genus. (L. sub, 
and genus, a kind.) 


217 Sub 


Subgenus.—The sub-division of a genus, compre- 
hending one or more species. (L. sub, and 
genus.) 


Subglobose.—Partially spherical. (L. sub, and 
globus.) 


Submargin.—An imaginary portion of a surface, 
situated exterior to the disc and within the 
margin. (Say). (L. sub. and margo, the margin.) 


Submarginal cells (cel/ul@ submarginales. )—The cells 
of the wing immediately below the marginal 
cells. The cubital cells. (L. sub, and margo, 
the margin.) 


Subocellate.—Applied to a spot on the wing of a 
Lepidopterous insect, when it resembles an 
ocellate spot, but is destitute of a pupil, blind. 
(L. sub, and ocellus, an eye.) 


Sub-cesophageal commissure.—The cross nerve 
(Burgess) connected the lower portions of the 
crura cerebri, and forming a semi-circle round 
the ventral part of the cesophagus. (L. sub, 
and Gr. cesophagus.) 


Suboesophageal ganglion.—A thick nerve ring 
connecting the supracesophageal ganglion with 
the tritocerebron. (L. sub, and Gr. oisophagos, 
and ganglion.) See Cerebral ganglion. 

Subpunctatus.—Slightly punctured. L. sub, and 


punctum, a puncture.) 


Subsegments.—The term given to the four sections 
comprising the head of an insect. (Newport.) 
(L. sub, and segment.) 


Sub ae 


Subsinuate.—Having small curved bays or breaks 
in the margin. (L. sub. and sinus, a bay.) 


Substriatus.—Slightly striate. (L. sub, and stria, 
a furrow.) 


Subterranean.—(Pupz.)§ (L. sub, and terra, the 
earth.) See Pup subterranez. 


Subulate.—Awl-shaped; linear; narrow and 
tapering ; terminating in a sharp point. (L. 
subula, an awl.) 


Subulate.—Having a long thin cone slightly bent 
throughout its whole course; awl-like. (L. 
subula.) 


“Sucking stomach.”—A thin muscular pocket 
connected by a slender neck with the end of the 
cesophagus, or the crop, when the latter is 
present. (A.S. swcan, and stomach.) 


Suffulted pupil. When the pupil of the eye of 
colour shades into another colour. (L. suffultus, 
propped or supported, and pupil.) 


Suleate-—Deeply furrowed. Possessing groove- 
like excavations longitudinally arranged. 
(L. sulcus, a furrow.) 


Sulciform.—Furrow shaped. (L. sulcus, and forma.) 


Sulphureus.—The colour of brimstone; yellow. 
(L. sulphur, sulphur.) 


Super.—-A Latin prefix signifying over, above, 
beyond. 


219 Sup 


Superadded nervous system.—Consists of a small 
median nerve extending from each of the first 
eleven ventral ganglia. As a rule the median 
nerve gives rise to the respiratory nerves. (L. 
super, addo, to add.) 


Superciliary.—Placed above the eyes. (I. super, 
and ciliwm, the eyelid.) 


Supercilium.—An arched line somewhat resembling 
an eyebrow, which sometimes surmounts an 
eye, or eyelet. (L. super, and calium.) 


Superficies (superficies externa).—The exterior 
surface. (L.) 


Superficies inferia.~—The prone, or under surface. 
(L.) See prone surface. 


Superficies interna.—The interior surface. (L.) 


Superior (ant. superiores).—(Antennie.) Placed, as 
is usual, upon the upper part of the head. (L.) 


Superior lobe.—(L. comparative of suwperus, high, 
from super; and lobus.) See Lobus superior. 


Supine surface.—(Sw perficies.) The wpper surface. 


Supra.—A Latin prefix signifying above, over, or 
beyond. 


Supra-anal plate-—{See Suranal plate.] 


Supra-clypeus.—A subdivision of the clypeus, 
especially observable in the Hymenoptera. 


Sup 220 


Supracesophageal ganglion.—A large nerve-centre 
situated in front of the gullet, and known as 
the “brain”; it gives off nerves to the eyes 
andthe antenne. (Rabl-Ruckard). (L. swpra, 
and Gr. oisophagos, the gullet.) See Cerebral 
ganglion. 


Supra-spinal Cord.—A longitudinal cord of con- 
nective tissue forming a yellowish-white band, 
and which seems to be an outgrowth of the dorsal 
portion of the neurilemma of the ventral cord. 


Supra-spinal vessel—One of the pulsating organs 
lying as a ventral sinus upon the nervous cord, 
and closed by a pulsating diaphragm. 


Suranal plate.—A triangular, often thick, solid 
plate of the male genital armature, the remnant 
of the tergum of the last, usually tenth, segment 


of the abdomen. (Packard.) 
Sursum.—(Direction.) Upwards. (L.) 


Sutural.—Pertaining to the suture. (L. swo, to 
sew.) 


Suture.—The dividing line or space. (L. suo.) 


Swimming fan.—A row of (generally twenty-five) 
long feathered bristles situated on the venter 
of the ninth segment of Corethra larve. 
(Theobald.) (A.S. swimman, and fann.) 


Syn.—A Greek prefix signifying with, or together. 


Syntype.—All the specimens, except the type, upon 
which a species is based and described. (Gr. 
syn, and typos, type.) 


221 Tee 


Syringes.—Organs situated in various parts of 
larvee, from which they eject fluid. (Kirby and 
Spence.) (Fr. syrinque, from L. syrina, a tube.) 


Tenidia.—The “ spiral threads,” the flat concavo- 
convex, sometimes solid, rings found in the 
trachez, and which are sometimes seen to be 
spirally arranged; they are a thickening of the 
chitinised folds of the endotracheal membrane. 


(Gr. little bands.) 


Tail.—The terminal segment of the abdomen. An 
elongation of the tip of the inferior wings in 
some Lepidoptera. (A.S. tag, tegel, hair.) 


Talus.—The ankle ; the apex of the tibia, where it 
is united to the tarsus. (L. the ankle.) 


Tarsal.—Pertaining to the tarsus. (Gr. tarsos, the 
flat of the foot.) 


Tarsus.—The foot or last part of the leg, consisting 
of five joints called the first, second, third, 
fourth and fifth joint of the tarsus, or planta,* 
metaplanta, allax, arthrium, and ungula, the 
planta being nearest to the tibia, the others 
in regular succession. (Gr. tarsos.) 


Taster.—Palpus or feeler. (Fr. to handle, to feel.) 


Tawny.—Of a yellowish-dark colour. (Fr. tanné, 
tawny.) 


Teeth.—A horny substance growing out of the jaws 
of insects, and serving in the act of mastication. 
A series of projections resembling teeth. (A.S. 


toth.) 


8 
* Metatarus of Theobald. 


Teg 222 


Tegmina.—The roof-shaped thickened fore-wings 
in Orthoptera and Homoptera. (L. tegmen, a 
covering.) 


Tegula.—A small tubercular plate immediately 
at the base of each fore-wing, which covers the 
metathoracic spiracle. (L. tegula, a tile.) 


Teli cerebroida.—The thirteenth and last cerebroida. 
(Gr. telos, the end, and L. cerebrum.) 


Teli corculum.—The corcula of the telum. (Gr. 
telos, and L. corculum, a little heart.) 


Telson.—The last segment. (Gr. the limit.) 


Telum.—The thirteenth and last segment in 
insects; the last segment of the abdomen. 
(From Gr. telos, the end.) 


Temple.—The side of the head. (A.S. tempel,— 
Low L. templum, a temple.) See Tempora. 


Tempora.—The temples, the posterior portion of 
the sides of the head lying approximate to the 
eyes. (L.) 


Tendon.—A strong bristle, or bristles, seen at the 
base underneath in the underwings of Lepi- 
doptera (L. tendo, to stretch.) 


Tenent.—Hairs which exude a thin mucilaginous 
fluid. (From L. teneo, to hold, to stick.) 


Teneral.—A state of the imago after exclusion from 
the pupa, in which it has not fully completed 
its clothing, colouring, etc. (From L. tener, soft, 
young, tender.) 


223 Ter 


Tentaculze.—Retractile processes on the larve of 
some species of Lepidoptera. (L. tentacula, 
tentacles.) 


Tentaculate.—Having soft tensile excrescences. 
(L. tentacula.) 


Tentacules.—Delicate organs of touch ; soft tensile 
excrescences. (L. tentacula.) 


Tentaculiferous.—Bearing tentacula or tentacles. 
(L. tentacula, and fero, to bear.) ; 


Tentorium.—A semi-transparent chitinous septum 
of the complex inner skeleton in the head 
capsule formed by inpushing of the chitin ; 
which gives attachment to the muscles used in 
moving the head and jaws. (Burmeister.) 


(L.) 


Terebella—The saw-like ovipositor with which 
many females bore holes to deposit their eggs. 
(From I. terebro, to bore.) 


Terebrantia.—A tribe of hymenopterous insects, 
the borers, the females of which have an 
ovipositor. (L. terebrans, from terebro, to bore.) 


Teres.—When the circumference is circular, but 
its thickness indeterminate, nearly cylindrical. 


(L. round.) 
Terete.—Cylindrical and smooth. (LL. teres.) 


Tergz.—Dorsal plates ; plates borne on the tergum. 
(From L. tergum, the back.) 


Tergiferous.—Carrying on the back. (L. tergum, 
and fero, to bear.) 


Ter 224 


Tergites.—The different tergal pieces constituting 
the genital armature. (Lacaze—Duthiers.) 
(Another term for terge.) 


Tergo-sternal.—The muscles connecting the tergites 
with their corresponding sternites. (L. ¢ergum, 
and sternum.) 


Tergum.—The superior, upper or dorsal portion of 
a segment, separated from the venter by sutural 
lines, and divided into segments which are 
generally, especially in the case of the abdomen, 
perforated on each side, by the spiracule. It is 
the collective term for the four tergal, or dorsal 
pieces of the preescutum, scutum, scutellum, and 
postscutellum. (L. the back.) 


Termen.—The hinder muscles of the wing. (UL. 
terminus, a boundary.) 


Tessellate.—Marked with chequer-work.  (L. 
tessellatus, chequered.) 


Test.—The secretionary covering which is attached 
to the bodies of female coccids. (L. testa.) 


Testa.—The chitinous covering of a testaceous 
insect. (L. an earthen pot or shell.) 


Testaceous.—Consisting of a hard, outer covering. 
Brownish-yellow, the colour of unglazed earthen- 
ware. (From L. testa.) 


Testes.—Male organs of reproduction, consisting 
of several seminal tubes or shorter seminal 
pouches, situated at the end of the vas deferens. 
(L. testis, a testicle.) 


225 Tho 


Testicle.—One of the glands which secrete the 
seminal fluidin males. (L. testis.) See Testes. 


Testiculate——Shaped like a testicle. (L. testis.) 


Testudinarious.—Painted with red, black, and 
yellow, like tortoiseshell. (L. testudo, a 
tortoise.) 


Testudinate.—Resembling a tortoise in colour and 
markings. (L. testudo.) 


Tetragonal.—Having four corners or angles. (Gr. 
tetra, four, and gonia, an angle.) 


Tetragonum.—Four-sided. (Gr. tetra, and gonia.) 


Tetramerous.—With four joints. (Gr. tetra, and 
meros, a part.) 


Theea.—The pupa case, the chitinous covering to 
the soft organs undergoing histology. (Gr. 
a case.) 


Theca.—The sheath, or case, of the proboscis, 
representing the labium in a perfect mouth ; 
and including the basis, and labella. The 
corneous chitinous case enclosing a part. (Gr.) 


Thigh.—The femur, the second or great joint of 
the legs. (A.S. theoh). See Femur. 


Thoracotheca.*—The trunk-case, that portion of 
the theca enclosing the thorax. (Gr. thoraz, 
and theca.) 


Thorax.—The anterior mass in pedunculated 
insects; that part of the body between the head 
and the abdomen. (Gr.) 


* Cytotheca of Kirby and Spence. 


Thy 226 


Thysanoptera.—An order of Hexapoda. An order 
of insects possessing four narrow fringed wings, 
and a weak imperfect suctorial mouth. The 
metamorphosis is very slight. (Gr. thysanos, 
a fringe, and pteron, a wing.) 


Thysanura.—A_ sub-order of apterous insects, 
belonging to the order Aptera, which undergo 
no metamorphosis, and possess no wings, but 
three pairs of legs. They practically remain in 
the larval stage throughout life. (Gr. thysanos, 
a fringe, and oura, a tail.) 


Tiaratate.—(Kge.) Turban-shaped. (Gr. tiara, 
a turban. 


Tibia.—The shank, or fourth joint of the leg, con- 
nected with the femur and the tarsus. (L.) 


Tibial.— Pertaining to the tibia. 


Tomentose.—Covered with fine matted hairs; 
Cotton-like im appearance; cottony. (L. 
tomentum, woolly.) 


Tomentum.—A kind of soft pubescence. (L.) 
Tongue.—(A.S. tunge.) See Lingua. 


Topazine.—(Splendour.) The yellow splendour of 
the topaz. (Gr. topaz.) 


Tornus.—(Wing.) The angle between the dorsum 
and the termen. (L.) See Anal angle. 


Torose, Torous.—Protuberant swelling in knobs. 
(L. torulus, a knob.) 


227 Tra 


Torpidity.—A state of hybernation in which no 
exterior signs of life are exhibited. (L. torpidus, 
from torpeo, to be numb.) 


Tortilis—Twisted. (L. from tortus, pa. par. of 
torqueo, to twist.) 


Torulose.—Having few, but large elevations. 
(Antenne) ; joints possessing tumours or knobs. 


(L. torulus.) 


Torulus.—The bed ; the cavity or socket in which 
the base of the antenne is planted. (L.) 


Trabecula.—A basal mass of fibres situated within 
the cellular envelope and on either side of the 
supracesophageal ganglion, and giving rise to 
the cauliculus. (From L. trabs,a beam.) See 
Mushroom Bodies. 


Trabeculus.—The beam of the antenne; a small 
movable stalk, situated close to and in front of 
each antenna. (L. trabs.) 


Trachee.—The organs of respiration in insects; 
they are simple tubes which communicate 
externally with the air by means of spiracles, 
and internally with the blood. From each 
spiracle a single trachea enters the body. If 
the trachee upon entering the body separate, 
diverge, or ramify throughout the region in their 
immediate vicinity without any obvious connec- 
tion with the trachee of the adjoining spiracles, 
they are said to be detached; and connected 
when there is a grand longitudinal trachea 
traversing each side of the body throughout its 


16 


Tra 228 


length, into which each spiracle sends its 
particular trachea, sometimes as a single tube, 
sometimes after a slight ramification. (L. 
trachea, from Gr. trachys, the rough.) 


Tracheal gills.— Bunches of filaments which contain 
air tubes, attached in pairs to the various body 
segments, which permit the insect to breathe 
the air dissolved in water. (Palmén.) (L. 
trachea, and Scan. M.K. gille, from Dan. gielle.) 


Tractile sensilla.—The hairs of the body generally, 
which are movably articulated to the chitinous 
integument, and which are provided with fine 
nerve terminations. (L. tractus, from traho, to 
draw, and sensille, from sensilis, endowed with 
sense.) 


Tramosericeous.—The splendour of satin. (L. 
trans, and sericus, silken.) 


Trans.—A Latin prefix signifying over or beyond, 
or denoting a complete change. 


Transverse.— Broader than long. (L. trans, and 
versus, turned.) 


Transverse.—Running across; when the longi- 
tudinal line is cut through at right angles. 
(L. trans, and versus.) 


Transverse impression or Suture.—A_ transverse 
furrow crossing the central portion of the 
dorsal surface of the mesothorax of Diptera, 
and terminating on each side a little before the 
base of the wings. 


Transverse nerves.—The respiratory nerves. 


229 Tri 


Trapezate, Trapezoidal.—Quadrilateral with the 
four sides unequal, and none of them perfectly 
parallel. In the shape of a trapezium. (L. 
trapeza, a table, from tetra, four, and poza, foot.) 


Tri-.—A Greek and Latin prefix signifying three. 


Triangular.— Having three angles ; in the form ofa 
triangle. (L. tr?, and angulus, an angle.) 


Triarticular.— With three joints. (L. tri, and 
articulus, a joint.) 


Tricarinate.—Having three longitudinal elevated 
lines. (UL. tr?, and carina, a keel.) 


Trichodeal.—Sense-hairs; tractile sensilla. (Gr. 
trichoder, hair; like hair.) 
Trichotomous.—Dividing by threes. (Gr. tricha, 


three, and tome, a cutting.) 


Tricuspid, Tricuspidate.—Divided into three points; 
ending in three points. (L. tr, and cuspis, a 
point.) 


Tridactylous.—Having three toes, or claws. (Gr. 
tr?, three, and daktulos, a toe.) 


Trifasciate.—Furnished with three coloured bands. 
(L. trz, and fascra, a band.) 


Trifid.—Cleft in three. (L. ér7, and findo, to cleave.) 


Trifureate.—Having three branches or forks. (L. 
tri, and furca, a fork.) 


Trigonate—Three-cornered. (L. trigonum, from 
Gr. trigonon, a triangle.) 


Tri 230 


Trilateral Having three sides. (L. tr, and 
latus, a side.) 


Trilineate.—Painted with three lines. (L. ¢r, 
and linea, lit, a string of flax, a line.) 


Trimerous.—Possessing three parts, or pieces. 
(Gr. tri, three, and meros, a part.) 


Tripartite.—Divided into three parts. (L. tr?, and 
partite). See Partite. 


Tripupillate-—When the ocellus has three pupils, o1 
spots of colour. (L. tri, and pupillus.) 


Triquetrous, Triquetrum.—The form whose 
horizontal sections are equilateral triangles. 
Three-sided. (L. triquetrus, triangular.) 


Tritocerebral.—The third segment of the head, the 
intercalary segment. (From Gr. tritos, third, 
and cerebrum.) 


Tritocerebron.—The hind brain which comprises 
only that region of the sub-cesophageal ganglion 
from which arise the nerves to the labrum and 
food-gullet. (Gr. tritos, and cerebrum.) 


Triturating.—Adapted for crushing. (I. trituratus, 
pa. par. of treturo, to crush.) 


Trochanter.—The trochanter or second joint of the 
leg connected anteriorly to the coxa and 
posteriorly to the femur. (Gr. a runner.) 


Trochantine.—A posterior subdivision or projection 
of the coxa. (Packard.) (Gr. trochanter.) 


231 Tub 


Trochlearis.—Pulley-shaped; like a cylinder 
contracted in the middle. (L. trochlea, a pulley, 
from Gr. trochos, a running.) 


Trophi.—The parts of the mouth employed in 
feeding. (Gr. trepho, to feed.) 


Trumpets.—The respiratory horns arising from the 
dorsum of the thorax, just above or in front of 
the roots of the wing cases of mosquito (Culex) 
pupe. They are tubular, cylindrical, trumpet 
shaped structures, communicating directly 
with the tracheal system. (Theobald.) (Fr. 
trompette, dimin. of trompe, a trump.) 


Truncate.—Abruptly cut right across in a straight 
Ime. (L. truncus.) 


Truncus, Trunk.—The trunk; the intermediate 
section of the body which lies between the 
head and the abdomen. It includes the 
manitruncus, and alitruncus. (L.) 


Tubercle.—A small abrupt elevation of varying 
form. (From L. tumeo, to swell.) 


Tuberculose, Tuberculate, Tuberculous.—Covered 
with tubercle-like prominences. (L. twmeo.) 


Tuberiferous.— Bearing tubercles. (L. twmeo, and 
fero, to bear.) 


Tubular ovipositor (twbudus)—A tubular retractile 
appendage of the telum; the instrument with 
which the female deposits her eggs. (L. 
tubulus, from tubus, a tube, and ovum, and 
postium, to place.) See Ovipositor. 


Tub 232 


Tubular tunnels.—The two tubes which pierce the 
head of Anopheles in an antero-posterior direct- 
ion. They open in front of the head by a 
shit-like orifice placed between the anterior 
limit of the eye and clypeus, passing backwards 
to open in the back of the head, near the 
ventral edge, below the neck, in two trumpet- 
shaped apertures. (L. tubulus, and F. tonnel, 
a tunnel.) 


Tubulus.—The oviduct of flies.—(L. tubus.) 


Tubulus.—The tubulet; the tube or retractile 
base of the rostellum. (L. tubus.) 


Tunica intima.—The inner layer of the silk-glands, 
(L.) 


Tunica propria.—The outer layer of the silk-glands. 
(L.) 


Tunicate (capitulum tunicatum.).—(Antenne.) 
Having each successive joint buried in the 
preceding funnel-shaped one. (L. tunica, a 
tunic.) 


Turbinate.—Shaped like a top or cone inverted. 
(From L. turbo, a top.) 


Turgid.—Resembling a distended bladder. (L. 


turgeo, to swell.) 


Turreted.—(Head.) When it is produced anteriorly 
and above into a pyramidal point. Caput 
turritum. (L. turris, a tower.) 


Twin ocellus——When the eyes of colour join each 
other. (A.S. tw7-, double; the -n, gives a 
distributive force, as in L. bi-n-7, two at a time.) 


933 Une 


Tympana.—The drums; two deep cavities on 
each side of the epigastrium, which are the 
instruments of sound. (Gr. tympanon, from 
typto, to strike.) 


Tympanal.—Pertaining to the tympanum. (Gr. 
tympanon.) 


Tympanal nervi.—The receiving nucleus of the 
nerve-fibres from the nerve-cells connected with 
the groups of elongate rods situated above the 
drum, and stretched across within the limb. 
(Gr. tympanon, and L. nervi.) 


Ulnar nervure.—A radiating or cross nervure in the 
wing. (L. ulna, and nervus.) 


Umber.—Brown, dark with yellow. (Umbria, in 
Italy, where the ore of iron of this name is 
mined.) 


Umbones.—Two movable thorns situated on the 
prothorax in Acrocinus longimanus. (LL. wnbo, 
anything that projects.) 


Unbra.—A shadow ; a slight shade of colour upon 
a paler ground, when not easily distinguished. 
(L. a shadow.) 


Un-.—A Saxon prefix signifying not before nouns 
or adjectives, and the reversal of its action 
before verbs. 


Uneiform.—Hook-shaped ; having the form of a 
hook. (L. wneus, a hook, and forma.) 


Uncinate.—Hooked at the end. (L. unevs.) 


Une 234 


Uneinate.—(Antenne.) Hooked, having the last 
joint bending back upon the preceding. (L. 
UNCUS.) 


Under Wings (Alae inferiores)—The lower, or 
secondary pair of organs of flight. (A.S. under, 
and Scand. wing.) 


Undose.— Having undulating nearly parallel some- 
what broad depressions which run into each 
other, and resemble the sand of the sea-shore 
when left by the tide. (L. undosus, billowy 
wave-like.) 


Undulate.—Possessing waved markings, either 
longitudinally or transversely. (L. undulatus, 
from unda, a wave.) 


Undulatus.—Waved ; a margin with a series of 
successive arched incisions. (L. wndo, undulate.) 


Unequal.—Different in size or length. (wn, and L. 
equalis, equal.) 


Ungues, Unguicula.—Claws, or curved hooks at the 
extremity of the tarsi. (L. wngwis, a claw.) 


Ungues.—(Mouth.) The claws; one or more 
corneous sharp claws which arm the lobes of 
the maxilla. (L.) 


Unguicula, (pl. wnguicule).—A sharpened curved 
claw at the extremity of the ungula; generally 
two in number. (L. dimin. of unguis, a claw.) 


235 Uni 


Unguiculate.—(Maxille)—When the terminal 
tooth of the maxilla is movable, and can be 
moved to, and withdrawn from, the internal 
margin of the superior lobe at the will of the 
insect. (L. wnguis.) 


Unguiculate.—Clawed ; having claws. (L. wnguis.) 


Unguiform.—Shaped like a claw. (L. wnguis and 
forma.) 


Ungula.—The fifth or terminal joint of the tarsus. 
(L. a claw.) 


Ungulate.— Possessing claws. (L. wngula, a claw.) 
Ungulate.—Hoof-shaped, like a horse’s hoof. (Say). 


Uni-.—In composition, indicates one. (Uni, from 
L. wnus, one.) 


Unicapsular.— Possessing only one capsule. (L. 
unus, and capsula, a capsule.) 


Unicolorus.—Of one colour, of the same hues. (L. 
unus, and color, colour.) 


Unicornous.—Possessing only one horn. (L. 
unus, and cornu, a horn.) 


Uniform.—Having the same form; not variable ; 
consistant with itself. (L. wnus, and forma.) 


Unilabiate.— Possessing a single lip. (L. wnus, and 
labium, a lip.) 


Unilateral.—On one side only (of the exterior of 
joints of lamellate antenne, etc.) (L. um, 
and Jateris, a side.) 


Uni 236 


Unilocular.—Having one cell only. (L. wnus, and 
locus, a place.) 


Unisetose.— Bearing one seta. (L. wnus, and seta, 
a bristle.) 


Unpaired median nervous system.—[See Vagus 
System. | 


Urate cells.—Large opaque cells, easily seen in the 
larval and pupal stages, but in the adult small, 
and may be regarded as a premitive form of 
kidney, adapted for storing the products of 
tissue metabolism. (From L. urina, urine.) 


Urceolate.—Pitcher-shaped ; swelling in the middle 
like a pitcher. (Mod. L. urceolatus, from L. 
urceolus, dimin. of urceus, a water-pitcher.) 


Urinary tubes.—The outgrowths of the procto- 
deum. (From L. urina, urine.) 


Urites.—The segments of the abdomen (Lacaze- 
Duthiers), (wro- pref. tailed ; Gr. owra, a tail.) 


Urites.—A condensed term of the urosternites. 
(Packard.) 


Uro-.—Tailed ; having a tail or a tail-like process 
or processes (pref. from Gr. oura, a tail.) 


Uromeres.—The abdominal segments. (Packard.) 
(Gr. uro, and meros, a part.) 


Uro-patagia.—The podical plates. (Packard.) 
(Gr. uro, and patagia.) 


Urosome.—The abdomen. (Packard.) (Gr. uro, 
and soma, a body.) 


237 Vag 


Urosternites.—The sternal sclerites. (Packard.) 


Ustulate.—So marked with brown as to have the 
appearance of being scorched. (L. ustulatus, of 
ustulo, to burn.) 


Uterus.—The vagina; the term is generally used 
with the pupiparous forms. (L. the lower part 
of the belly ; inner part ; the womb.) 


Utriculi majores and breviores.—The numerous 
large and short utricles which the seminal 
vesicles bear. (LL. utriculus.) 


Utrinque.— With respect to the direction of parts, 
the term is used to indicate a quality or 
peculiarity found on each side of the body and 
at the same place. (L. wtrinque, on both sides.) 


Utricle.—A little bag or bladder; a cell; a thin 
capsule of one cell, containing a single sperm. 
(L. utriculus, a small skin, from uter, a bag or 
bottle of hide.) 


Utricles.—Numerous tubes found in the sperm- 
vesicles. (I. wtriculus.) 


Utricular.—Containing utricles; furnished with 
granular vessel-like little bags; like a utricle. 
(L. utriculus.) 


Vagina.*—The short passage formed by the two 
oviducts uniting, which opens to the outside 
through a special sclerite situated between the 
seventh and eighth sternites of the abdomen. 
(L. a sheath.) 


* In some insects (Thysanura, Ephemera), the vagina 
is wanting, and both the oviducts open direct on 
the postero-ventral surface of the body. 


Vag 238 


Vagina.—The jointed sheath of the promuscis. 
The bi-valve coriaceous sheath of the spicula 


(Say). (L.) 


Vaginal.—Pertaining to, or resembling a sheath ; 
pertaining to the vagina. 


Vaginate.—Sheath-like. 


Vaginopennous.—Having the wings covered with 
a hard sheath; sheath-winged. (L. vagina, 
and penna, a wing.) 


Vagus.—The median nervous cord connecting the 
three unpaired ganglia, constituting the visceral 
system of insects. (Newport.) (L. vagus, 
wandering, vagrant.) 


Vagus ganglion.—A minute elongated ganglion 
situated between the aorta and the cesophagus, 
and which constitutes the termination of the 
recurrent nerve. 


Vagus nervous system.—The sympathetic nervous 
system, consisting of the arched, frontal, 
pharyngeal, recurrent, stomogastric nerves, 
and the vagus ganglion. 


Valve.—The valves; two lateral lamine which 
cover the ovipositor when it is unemployed. 


(L.) 


Valvate.—Possessing or resembling a valve. (L. 
vala, a valve.) 


Valve.—A lid or cover to an aperture, so formed as 
to open a communication in one direction, and 
close it in another. (L. valva.) 


239 Vel 


Valvula.—A corneous piece covering the instru- 
ments of suction above; a little valve. (L. 
dimin. of valva.) 


Valvulz.—The podical plates. (Burmeister.) 
Valvule.—A small valve-like process. 


Variole.—A pit, or poc-like mark. (Fr. From L. 
varius, Various.) 


Variolate, Variolose.—Pitted, poc-marked. (L. 
(varius.) 


Vas deferens (Vasa deferentia)—Male organs of 
reproduction ; two in number, which unite to 
form a single duct (this duct may be absent, 
and the vasa deferentia then open separately). 
Each widens posteriorly to form a vesrcula 
seminalis. (L. vas, a vessel, and deferens, 
bearing down.) 


Vasiform.—Vessel-shaped, resembling somewhat 
a cup or jug in shape. (L. vas, a vessel, and 
forma, shape.) 


Velium.—A membrane; usually seen attached to 
some calearia. (Fr. vélin, from L. witulus, a 


calf.) 


Velum penis.—The name given to the penis of the 
locusts. (Acrydiide.) (L. a covering, and 
penis.) 


Velutinous.—Velvet-like, covered with very thick 
short upright hairs. (It. veluto.) 


Vei 240 


Vein.—A tubular vessel which receives the blood 
or vital fluid and conveys it to the heart and 
circulating centres. (L. vena, a blood vessel.) 


Vena.—A vein. (L.) 

Venez longitudinales.—The longitudinal veins of 
the wing, which are connected to each other by 
the transverse veins. (L.) 


Venose, Venous.—Painted with lines that branch 
like veins. (L. vena.) 


Vent.—The anus.—(fent, from O.Fr. fente, a slit.) 


Venter.—The belly, the lower or prone part of the 
abdomen. (L.) 


Ventrad.—An abbreviated form of ventrally, or 
ventral. 


Ventral nerve trunk.—A small inconspicuous nerve 
trunk originating from the ventral side of the 
third abdominal ganglion, extending latero- 
ventrally, and sending off branches which 
innervate the ventral muscles. 


Ventral segments.—The transverse segments of 
the belly. They include the elastes, when they 
are present. (L. ventralis, from venter, the 


belly.) 


Ventral sympathetic system.—[See Superadded 
nervous system. | 


Ventral tube, or sucker.—A more or less simple 
tubercle, divided into two halves by a septum, 
and situated under the anterior abdominal 
segment of the Collembola. The tube varies 
in construction in the different genera. 


241 Ver 


Ventricle—A small cavity in the body. (L. 
ventriculus, a belly, stomach.) 


Ventricose.—Cylindrical in form, distending 
suddenly into a large cavity as if filled with air. 
(Low L. ventricosus, from L. venter.) 

Ventricosus.—The term given to the gullet when it 
dilates into a large bag or crop before its union 
with the stomach, and detains the food in its 
passage to that organ. (L.) 


Ventricular ganglion.—A triangular nerve centre 
which lies on the crop, and is connected with 
the frontal ganglion by the recurrent nerve. 
(L. ventriculus, and ganglion.) 


Ventriculus.—{See Stomach. ] 


Vermicular.—Resembling a worm. (L. vermes, 
worms.) 


Vermiculate.—Covered with tortuous, irregular, 
sinuate, worm-shaped markings or _ strie. 
(From L. vermes.) 


Vermicule.—A little worm or grub. (L. vermes.) 


Vernantia.—Moulting ; the shedding of the skin or 
exuvia. (From L. vernans, from ver, spring.) 


Verriculate.—With thick-set tufts of parallel hairs. 
(L. verres, boar.) 


Verruca.—A wart. (L.) 


Verruca.—A small flattish wart-like prominence. 
(L.) 


Verrucose, Verrucous, Verruculose.—Covered with 
wart-like prominences.—(L. verruea.) 


Ver 242 


Versatile.—(Head.)—When it can be freely moved 
every way. (L. versor, to turn.) 


Versicolorous.—Of various colours.—(L.  versz, 
perf. of vergo, to turn ; and color, colour.) 


Vertex.—The vertex, the upper flattened portion of 
the head, upon which very generally the ocelli 
are situated. (From L. verto, to turn.) 


Vertical.—Perpendicular. (L. verto, to turn.) 
Vertical.—(Motion.) When it is up and down. 


Vertical margin.—The limit between the frons and 
the occiput of Diptera. (Loew.) (Fr. vertical, 
from L. verticalis, from verter and margin.) 


Verticillate.—Are those antenne, the joints of which 
are surrounded, at equal distances, with stiff 
hair. (Trichopterygide.) (L. verticillatus, from 
verto, to turn.) 


Verticillate.—Placed in whorls. (L. verto.) 


Vesicant, Vesicatory.—Raising a blister (applied 
to Lytta, Mylabris, ete.) (L. vesica, a blister, 
or little bladder.) 


Vesicle.—A little bladder, or portions of the inner 
membranes, separated to form small bladders ; 
any small membranous cavity or cell. (L. 
vesica.) 


Vesicula seminalis——Two tufts of white glands 
holding the spermatozoa, and which connect 
with the vasa deferentia. (lL. vesica ; and semen, 
seed.) : 


243 Vit 


Vesicular, Vesiculous.— Pertaining to, or consisting 
of vesicles; full of interstices; having small 
bladders or glands on the surface. (L. vesica.) 


Vibratile.—(Motion).—When there is a constant 
oscillation of any part ; adapted to, or used in 
vibratory motion. (L. vibro, to vibrate.) 


Villi.—Fine small fibres or hairs. (L. villus, hair.) 
Villosate.—Covered with long hairs. (L. villus.) 


Villose, Villous.—Covered with long, loosely set 
hairs ; covered with hairs which give a woolly 
appearance to the part; covered with soft 
dense hairs. (L. vdlus.) 


Violaceous.—Violet coloured, a mixture of blue 
and red. (L. viola, a violet). 


Viscera.—The contents of the head, thorax, and 
abdomen. (L. viscus, an intestine, an entrail.) 


Viscid.—Covered with a resinous or greasy matter. - 
(Fr. viscide, from L. viscidus, clammy.) 


Viscous, Viscid.—Sticky like birdlime. (L. viscosus, 
from viscum, bird-lime.) 


Visual organ.—The lens of the eye ; the crystalline 
humour of the eye. (Boas.) (L. visum, to see, 
and Gr. ergon, a work.) 


Vitelline membrane.—The thin inner yolk-like 
membrane of the egg. (L. vitellus, the yolk of 
of an egg ; and membrane.) 

Vitellinus.— Yellow, with a slight tinge of red. (L. 
vitellus.) 

17 


Vit 244 


Vitreous—body or cell.—The jelly-like mass con- 
tained in the visual organ. (L. vitrum, glass.) 


Vitta.—A longitudinal coloured stripe. (L. a band.) 
Vitta frontalis.—[See Frontal stripe.] 
Vittate.— Possessing vitte. 


Viviparous.—Producing young in a living state; 
opposed to oviparous. (L. vivus, living, and 
pario, to bring forth.) 


Volsellze.—The median pair of the genital append- 
ages of Ants. (L. volsella. tweezers.) 


Vulva.—The orifice of the oviduct. (Packard.) 
(L. the belly, the womb.) 


Web.—The plexus of delicate threads spun and 
woven by the Araneida. Through the minute 
apertures of the spinnerets the liquid substance 
that hardens and forms the silk-like threads 
of the web is passed, and these minute threads 
unite to form one line of extreme fineness. This 
line is covered with drops of a clear liquid, 
so it is seen two substances constitute the web 
—the solid thread, and the globules of clear 
liquid. (A.S. webb.) 

Wedge-shaped.—Having the shape of a wedge, 
cuneiform. (A.S. wecg.) 

Whirls.—(Antennz). Small hairs placed round 
the joints, like the spokes of a wheel. (M.E. 
whirflen, to turn.—Icel. hvirfla, frequent ; to 
turn round.) 


Whorls.—(M.E. whorl.) See Whirls. 


245 Wri 


‘Wing bones.”—The nerves or nervures of the 
wings. (M.E. winge, wenge.) 


Wing-case.—The chitinous case which covers and 
protects the delicate under-wings of coleo- 
pterous insects. (M.H. winge, wenge.) 


Wing-cells.—The Aree. 


Winglets.—Rudimentary wings. Small concave- 
convex scales, generally fringed at the tip, 
situated under the base of the elytra in Dytiscus 
marginalis Linn. (M.E. winge.) 


Wing ribs.—[See Nervures.] 


Wings.—Membranaceous, reticulated instruments 
of flight, attached laterally to the thorax. (M.E. 
winge, wenge,) 


Winter eggs.—The pseudova of the Aphids. (A.S8. 
winter, a winter, a year, and M.E. egges. Swed. 
agg + A.S. eg, the oval body of females from 
which the young arise.) 


Woody.—A term frequently used in describing 
parts of insects which bear a general appear- 
ance to wood, whether in texture, consistency, 


or appearance. (A.S. wudu.) 


Wrinkled.—A term used generally to imply 
rugosity. (M.E. wrinkle, perhaps allied to 
Wrench, and to A.S. wringan, to twist.) 


Writhled.—Wrinkled ; the term is not often met 
with. (M.E. writhen.) 


Xan 246 


Xanthic.—Yellowish. (Gr. xanthos.) 
Xanthos.—Yellow. (Gr.) 


Xyloid.—Wood-like in appearance. (Gr. sylon, 
wood, and erdos, like.) 


Xylophagous.—Wood Feeding. (Gr. zylon, and 
phago, to eat.) 


Xyphus.—The prolongation of the middle posterior 
margin of the sternal segments of Heteroptera. 


Zoonite, Zoonule.—The term given to the typical 
ring, or segment, when speaking of Worms and 
Crustaceans. (Gr. zoon, an animal ; the product 
of a fertilised ovum.) 


AUTHORITIES CONSULTED. 


Anthony, J. The Markings on the Battledore Scales 
of some of the Lepidoptera. London, 1872. 
Arrow, G. J. Sound-production in the Lamellicorn 

Beetles. (Trans. Ent. Soc., London, 1904, p. 277.) 

Audouin, J. V., and Lechat. Observations sur les Organes 
Copulateurs Males des  Bourdons.  (Annal. 
général d. sc. phys., 1821, vill., p. 285.) 

———— Lettre sur la Génération des Insects. (Annal. 
d. sc. Nat. séri., ii., 1824.) 

Austen, E.E. Blood Sucking Flies. (A System of Med., 
Vol. II., Part 2, p. 169. London, 1909.) 

African Blood Sucking Flies. London, 1909. 

———— A Handbook of the Tsetse Flies. (Genus 
Glossina). London, 1911. 

Balfour, F. M. A Treatise on Comparative Embry- 
ology. 2nd ed. London, 1885. 

Ballou, H. A. Scarabee of the Sweet Potatoe (Cryptor- 
hynchus batate, Waterhouse). West Ind. Bul., 
Vol. X., Part 2, p. 180. Barbados, 1909. 

———— Insects attacking Cotton in the West Indies. 
(West Ind. Bull., Vol. IV., Part 3, p. 368. Bar- 
bados, 1903.) 

———— Insects Attacking Cacao in the West Indies. 
(West Ind. Bull., Vol. VI., Part 1., p. 94. Bar- 
bados, 1905.) 

Banks, N. Leaf Blister Mites (reprinted from the Jour. 
New York Ent. Soc., March, 1904). (West Ind. 
Bull., Vol. VII., Part 4, p. 387. Barbados, 1907.) 

Bassett-Smith, P. W. Observations of Mosquitoes. 
(Jour. of Trop. Medic., Vol. III., p. 53. London, 
1900.) 

Bateman, W. Materials for the Study of Variation. 
London, 1894. 

Bates, H. W. The Naturalist on the River Amazon. 
London, 1892. 

Barrett, C. G. The Lepidoptera of the British Isles. 
London, 1893. 

Beard, J.C. Some New Features in Ant Life. (Scient. 
Amer., LX XXIV., p. 265. 1901.) 


248 


Bingham, C. T. The Fauna of British India. Hymen- 
optera, Vol. III. London, 1897.) 
The Fauna of British India. (Hymenoptera, 
Vol. If. London, 1903.) 


Blane, Louis. Etude sur la Secrétion de la Soie et la 
Structure du Brin et de la Bave dans le Bombyx 
mort. Lyon, 1889. 


Blake, J. On the Structure of the Honey-bag in the 
Honey-making Ant. (Myrmecocystus mexicans). 
(Proc. Calif. Acad. Soc., Part 2, p. 98, 1873). 


Boas, J. E. V. Text Book of Zoology. (Trans. 
J. W. Kirkaldy, and E. C. Pollard, p. 3-80, 231- 
286. London, 1896.) 


Brunner von Wattenwyl, C. Observations on the 
Coloration of Insects. London, 1897. (Trans. 
by E. J. Bles.) 

Buckler, W. The Larve of British Butterflies and 
Moths. Edit. by H. T. Stainton. London, 1886. 

Buckton, G. B. Monograph of the British Aphides. 
Vol. I. (Roy. Soc.) London, 1875. 

— Monograph of the British Cicade or Tetti- 
gide, Vol. I. London, 1890. 

Burr, M. British Orthoptera. Huddersfield, 1897. 

A Synopsis of the Orthoptera of Western 

Europe. 8vo. London, 1910. 

The Fauna of British India. Dermaptera. 

London, 1910. 

— Observations on the Dermatoptera, including 
revision of several genera, etc. (Trans. Ent. Soc. 
London, p. 277. 1904. 

Butler, E. A. Our Household Insects. An account of 
the Insect Pests found in Dwelling Houses. 
London, 1896. 

Cameron, P. A Monograph of the British Phytophagus 
Hymenoptera. (Ray. Soc., Vol. IV. London, 
1893.) 

Campbell, F. M. Ona Probable Case of Parthenogenesis 
in the House Spider (Tegenaria guyonit). (Jour. 
Linn. Soc. Zoo., XVI., p. 536. London, 1883.) 

Carpenter, G. H. Insects, their Structure and Life. 
London, 1899. 

———\— Species of Hemimerus and their Distribution. 
(Ent. Month. Mag., Ser. 2, Vol. XX. [XLV.], p. 250. 
London, 1909.) 


249 


Chapman, T. A. Notes on Xyleborus dispar. Fabr. 
(Trans. Ent. Soc. London, 1904, p. 100.) 
Cheshire, F.R. Beesand Bee-keeping, 2 Vols. London, 

1885-1888. 

Christophers, S. R. The Anatomy and Histology of the 
Adult Female Mosquito. (Roy. Soc. Reports 
to the Malarial Committe, Mar., 1901, Ser. 4.) 

Claus, C. and A. Sedgwick. Text Book of Zoology. 
London, 1892. 

Comstock, J. H. and Anna B. Comstock. A Manual for 
the Study of Insects. Ithaca, N.Y., 1895. 
Comstock, J. H. and V. L. Kellog. The Elements of 

Insect Anatomy. Ithaca. N.Y., 1895. 

Comstock, J. H. The Palpi of Male Spiders. (Ann. Ent. 
Soc. Amer., Vol. IIIf. Ohio, 1910, p. 161.) 

———— Relations of Ants and Aphides. (Amer. 
Nat., XXI., p. 382. 1886.) 

———— On the Homologies of the Wing-veins of 
Insects. (Amer. Nat., XXI., p. 932, 1887.) 
Connold, E.T. British Vegetable Galls. London, 1901. 

————— British Oak Galls. London, 1908. 

Dallas, W. S. Elements of Entomology. London, 
1857. 

Davis, H. Notes on the Pygidia and Cerci of Insects. 
(Jour. R. Mier. Soe. 1871, IL.) © 

Davy, J. Some Observations on the Excrements of 
Insects. (Trans. Ent. Soc. London, Ser. 2, III., 
1854, p. 18.) 

Dimmock, G. Organs, probably defensive in function 
in the larva of Hyperchiaria varia Walk. (Saturnia 
io Harris). (Psyche, III., p. 352, August 19th, 
1882.) 

—+———— On some glands which open externally on 
insects. (Psyche, III., p. 387, January 15th, 
1883.) 

The Anatomy of the Mouth-parts of the Suck- 
ing Apparatus of some Diptera. Boston, 1881. 

Doidge, J. Bee-keeping in Jamaica. (West Ind. Bull, 
Vol. I., Part 4, p. 305. Barbados, 1900.) 

Donovan, E. The Natural History of British Insects. 
Vols. L.-VIII. London. 

Douglas, J. W. The World of Insects. London, 1856. 


Douglas, J. W. and J. Scot. The British Hemiptera. 
(Vol. I., Ray. Soc. London, 1865). 


250 


Dujardin, F. Mémoires sur les Systéme Nerveux des 
Insectés. (Annal. des Sciences, nat. sér. 3. 1850, 
XGVi- ps 295.) 


Duncan, W. S. The Transformation of Insects. 6th 
edit. London, 1882. 


Duncan, J. Entomology in the Naturalists’ Library. 
Edited by Sir W. Jardine, Bart. Vols. I.-VII. 
Edinburgh. 


Edwards, J. The Hemiptera-Homoptera (Cicadina and 
Psyllina) of the British Islands. London, 1894-96. 


Emmons, E. Agriculture of New York. Vol. V. 
Natural History of New York. Albany, 1854. 


Fitch, A. An Essay upon the Wheat-fly. Svo Albany, 
1846. 


— The Hessian Fly. 8vo Albany, 1847. 


Fleming, G. A Treatise on the Parasites and Parasitic 
Diseases of Domesticated Animals. London, 
1892. 


Fowler, W. W. The Coleoptera of the British Islands. 
5 vols. London, 1887-91. 

The Fauna of British India (General Intro- 

duction and Cicindelidz and Pausside). London, 

1912. 


Froggatt, W. W. Australian Insects. Sidney, 1907. 


Gahan, C. J. A New Species of Phasmide of the Genus 
Prisopus, considered especially in reference to the 
supposed Aquatic Habits of the Genus. (The 
Entomologist, Vol. XLV., No. 585. February, 
1912, p. 49.) 

———— Stridulating Organs in Coleoptera. (Trans. 
Ent. Soc. London, 1900, p. 432.) 

———— The Fauna of British India. Coleoptera 
(Cerambycide.) Vol. I. London, 1906. 

Garman, H. The Mouth-parts of Thysanoptera. (Bull. 
Essex. Inst., 1890, XXII., p. 4.) 

Giles, G. M. A Handbook of the Gnats or Mosquitoes. 
London, 1900. 

Guppy.P. L. The Life History and Control of the Cacao 
Beetle (Stetrastoma depressum Linn.). (Cire. I., 
Brd. Agri. Trinidad, May, 1911.) 

Hammar, A. G. On the Nervous System of the Larva 
of Corydalis cornuta L. (Ann. Ent. Soe. Amer., 
Vol. I., No. 1. Ohio, 1908, p. 105.) 


251 


Hammond, A. The Thorax of the Blowfly. (Jour. 
Linn. Soc., London, XV., zool., 1880, p. 31.) 


Hampson, Sir George F. Catalogue of the Lepidoptera 
Phalenz in the British Museum. Vol. IV., 
London, 1903. 


Hansen, H. J. A Contribution to the Morphology of the 
Limbs and Mouth-parts of Crustaceans and Insects. 
(Ann. Mag. Nat. His. (6), XII., 1893; Transl. 
from Zoo. Anz., XVI., 1893.) 


Haseman, L. The Structure and Metamorphosis of the 
Alimentary Canal of the Larva Psychoda alter- 
nata Say. (Ann. Ent. Soc. Amer., Vol. III. 
Ohio, 1910, p. 277.) 


Hicks, J. B. Further Remarks on the Organs of the 
Antenne of Insects. (Trans. Linn. Soc., XXII., 
p- 155, 1859.) 

Hickson S. J. The Eyes and Optic Tract of Insects. 
(Quart. Jour. Micr. Soc., ser. 2, XXV., 1885, p. 
215.) 

Hilton, W. A. The Tracheal Supply in the Central 
Nervous System of the Larva Corydalis cornuta 
Linn. (Ann. Ent. Soc., Amer., Vol. II., Ohio, 
1909, p. 46.) 


Howard, L.O. A Study in Insect Parasitism. (Bull 5. 
{tech. ser.] Div. Ent. U.S. Dep. Agric., 1897.) 
Mosquitoes. New York, 1901. 
The Insect Book. New York, 1902. 
Huber, M. P. The Natural History of the Honey Bee. 
London, 1841. 
— The Natural History of Ants. (Transl. from 
the French by J. R. Johnson.) London, 1825. 


Hurst, H. The Post-embryonic Development of a Gnat 
(Culex). Manchester, 1890. 


Huxley, T. H. On the Organic Reproduction and 
Morphology of Aphis. Part 1, 1858; Part 2, 
1858. (Trans. Linn. Soc., XXII., p. 193-219 
and 221-236. London.) 

A Manual of the Anatomy of Invertebrated 
Animals. (London, 1877, p. 397.) 

Jackson, W. H. Studies in the Morphology of Lepid- 
optera. Part 1. (Trans. Linn. Soc., ser. 2, 
zool. v. London, 1890.) 


Jaeger, B North American Insects. Providence, 1854. 


17a 


252 


Janet, C. Sur la production des Sons chez les Fourmis 
et sur les Organes qui les produisent. (Ann. Soc. 
Ent. France, Vol. LXII., p. 159. 1893.) 
———— Sur l’Anatomie du pétiole de Myrmica rubra. 
(Mem. Soc. Zoo. France, Vol. VII., p. 185. 1894.) 
Sur l’Appareil de stridulation de Myrmica 
ruber. (Ann. Soc. Ent. France, Vol. LXIIL, 
p- 109. 1894.) 


Joy, N. H. A Note on the Male Genitalia of Anisotoma 
anglica Rye, and Gnathoncus nidicola Joy. 
(Ent. Month Mag., ser. 2, Vol. XX. [Vol. XLY.]. 
London, 1909, p. 219.) 


Kellog, V. L. The Mouth-parts of the Lepidoptera. 
(Amer. Nat., XXIX., 1895, p. 546.) 


Kellog, V. L. and Ruby, G.Bell. Studies of Variation 
in Insects. (Proc. Wash. Acad. Sc. 6, p. 203, 1904.) 


Kenyon, F. C. The Meaning and Structure of the so- 
called ‘‘Mushroom Bodies” of the Hexapod 
Brain. (Amer. Nat., XXX., 1896, p. 643.) 

Kirby, W. Monographia Apum Angliae. Ipswich, 
1802. 


Kirby, W. and W. Spence. An Introduction to Entom- 
ology. (4 Vols. London, 1822-26.) 


Lacaze-Duthiers, H. Recherches sur l’armure génitale 
femelle des insects. (Ann. Sc. Nat. Zoo., ser. 3, 
XGLV; pp. 72; 1850;) 


Laboulbene, M. A. Recherches sur l’Anurida Maritima. 
(Ann. Soc. Ent. de France, 1864, p. 711.) 


Lang, A. Text-book of Comparative Anatomy. 1891. 


Lewis, R. T. Note on a Stridulating Organ in a South 
African Ant, Streblognathus a@thiopicus. (Jour. 
Quekett Micr. Club, ser. 2, VL., p. 271, 1896.) 


Loew, H. The Diptera of North America. (Smith- 
sonian Miscellaneous Collections, 1862). 

Longstaff, G. B. Bionomic Notes on Butterflies, XXV. 
(Hope Reports, Vol. VII., 1908-10. Oxford, 
p- 607.) 

Lowne, B. T. On the Modifications of the Simple and 
Compound Eyes of Insects. (Phil. Trans. Roy. 
Soe., London, CLXIX, 1878, p. 577.) 

Anatomy, Physiology,: Morphology and 

Development of the Blowfly. London. Part 1, 

1880; Part 2, 1891. 


253 


Lowne, B. T. On the Structure and Development of 
the Ovaries and their Appendages in the Blow- 
fly (Calliphora  erythrocephala). (Jour. Linn. 
Soc., London, XX., 1889, p. 418.) 


Lubbock, Sir J. On the Ova and Pseudova of Insects. 
(Phil. Trans. Roy. Soc., London, CXLIX. 1858.) 


Ants, Bees and Wasps. London, 1882. 


Origin and Metamorphosis of Insects. 

London, 1874. 

Monograph of the Collembola and Thysanura. 

(Ray. Soc. London, 1873.) 

On the Senses, Instincts and Intelligence of 

Animals, with a special Reference to Insects. 

London, 1888, p. 292. 

On two Aquatic Hymenoptera, one of which 
uses its wings in swimming. (Trans. Linn. Soc., 
London, XXIV., 1863, p. 135.) 

—_——— On the Origin of Insects. (Jour. Linn. Soe., 
London, XI., 1873.) 

On the Development of Chloéon. (Trans. 
Linn. Soc., London, 1863 and 1865.) 


Lucas, W. J. British Dragon flies (Odonata). London, 
1900. 


MacLachlan, R. A Monographic Revision and Sy- 
nopsis of The Trichoptera of the European Fauna. 
London, 1874-80. 


MacLeay, W.S. On the Structure of the Tarsus in the 
Tetramerous Coleoptera of the French Entomo- 
logists. (Trans. Linn. Soc., London, XV., 1825, 
p- 63.) 


Mallock, A. Insect Light and the Defining Power of 
the Composite Eyes. (Proc. Roy. Soc. London, 
1894, LV., p. 85.) 


Mark, E. L. Simple Eyes in Arthropods. (Bull. Mus. 
Comp. Zoo., 1887, XIII., p. 49.) 


Maynard, C. L. The Defensive Glands of a Species of 
Phasma (Anisomorpha buprestoids). (Science, 
April, 1889.) 

Maxwell-Lefroy, H. The Moth Borer of the Sugar Cane. 
(Diatree saccharalis). (West Ind. Bull., Vol. I., 
Part 4, p. 327, Barbados, 1900.) 


———— Insect Pests of Sugar. (West Ind. Bull., 
Vol. IL., Part 1, p. 41. Barbados, 1901.) 


254 


Maxwell-Lefroy, H. The Ladybird or Weevil Borer of 
Sugar Cane (Sphenophorus serices, Oliv.). (West 
Ind. Bull., Vol. IIL, Part 1, p. 88. Barbados, 
1902.) 

———\— The Scale Insects of the West Indies. (West 
Ind. Bull., Vol. III, Part 4, p. 295. Barbados, 
1903.) 

Thrips on Cacao Trees (Heliothrips | Physopus | 
rubracincta, Giard.) (West Ind. Bull, Vol. IL., 
Part 3, p. 175. Barbados, 1901.) 

McCook, H. C. The Honey Ants. Philadelphia, 1882. 

MeIntire, S. J. Notes on the Minute Structure of Scales 
of Certain Insects. London, 1871. 

Maill, L. C. The Natural History of Aquatic Insects. 
London, 1895. 

Maill, L. C. and A. Denny. The Structure and Life 
History of the Cockroach (Periplaneta orientalis). 
An Introduction to the Study of Insects. London 
and Leeds, 1886. 

Moggridge, J. T. Harvesting Ants and Trapdoor 
Spiders. London, 1873. 

Morice, F. D. Illustrations of the Male Terminal Seg- 
ments and Armatures in thirty-five Species of 
Hymenoptera. (Trans. Ent. Soc., Londen, 1904, 
p: 25.) 

Morley. C. Ichneumons of Great Britain. Vol. I. Ich- 
neumonine. Plymouth, 1903. 

Muir, F. On the Egg-Cases and Early Stages of some 
Cossidide. (Trans. Ent. Soc., London, 1904, p. 1.) 

Newman, E. Memorandum on the Wing-rays of Insects. 
(Trans. Ent. Soc., London, ser. 2, ITT., 1855, p. 225.) 

The Grammar of Entomology. London, 
1835. 

Newport, G. On the nervous system of Sphynx 
ligustrt Linn. (Phil. Trans. Roy. Soc., Lon- 
don, 1832, p. 383, 1834, p. 389.) 

— On the Use of the Antenne of Insects. (Trans. 

Ent. Soc., London, II., 1840, p. 229.) 

— On the Formation and Use of the Air-sacs and 
Dilated Trachee in Insects. (Trans. Linn. Soc., 
London, 1851, XX., p. 419.) 

On the Respiration of Insects. (Phil. Trans. 
Roy. Soc., London, 1836, CX XVI.,-p. 529.) 

Newstead. Monograph of the Coccide of the British 

Isles. (Vol. I. and IL, Ray. Soc. London, 1900.) 


255 


Notes on West Indian Insects, by A. H. Clark (reprinted 
from Psyche.) Butterflies, Sir Gilbert T. Carter ; 
Orthoptera, J. A. G. Rehn (reprinted from Ento- 
mological News); Additional Notes on Insects, 
H. A. Ballou. (West Ind. Bull., Vol. VIL, 
Part 1, p. 40. Barbados, 1906.) 


Nuttall, G. H. F., Louis Cobbett and T. Strangeways-Prigg. 
Studies in Relation to Malaria, I. (From the 
Jour. of Hygiene, Vol. I., Part 1. Cambridge, 
January, 1901.) 

and A. E. Shipley. Studies in Relation to 

Malaria, If. The Structure and Biology of Ano- 

pheles. (Anopheles maculipennis). (From the 

Jour. of Hygiene, Vol. I., Part 1, 2 and 4, Vol. IL., 

Part 1, Vol. I1I., Part 2. Cambridge, Jan., 1901.) 


Ormerod, E. A. Manual of Injurious Insects. London, 
1881, second edit. London. 

———— A Handbook of Orchard and Bush Fruit 
Insects. London, 1898. 

Ormerod, E. L. British Social Wasps. London, 1868. 


Packard, A.S. On the Structure of the Ovipositor and 
Homologous Parts in the Male Insect. (Proc. 
Boston Soc. Nat. His., XI., 1868, p. 393.) 


———— A Text Book of Entomology. New York, 


1898. 
-————— A Guide to the Study of Insects. New York, 
1880; 


Parrott, P. J. The Cherry Ermine Moth. (Jour. Econ. 
Ent., Vol. III., p. 157, Concord, N.H., 1910.) 

Patch, Edith M. Homologies of Wing Veins, ete. (Ann. 
Ent. Soc. Amer., Vol. II., Ohio, 1909, p. 101.) 

Plateau, F. Recherches Expérimentales sur les Move- 
ments Respiratoire des Insects. (Mem. Acad. 
Belg., XIV., 1884.) 

Pocock, R.I. Ticks. (A System of Med., Vol. II., Part 
2, p. 187. London, 1909.) 

Rabl-Ruckhard. Studien uber Insektengehirne. Das 
Gehirn der Ameise. (Reicherts’ Arch. Anat. 
Phys., 1875, p. 480.) 

Rennie, J. Insect Architecture. London, 1857. 
Riley, C. V. The Senses of Insects. (Insect Life, 
Vol: IL., No. 1, p. 33. Washington, 1894.) 
Rothney, G. A. J. Notes on Indian Ants. (Trans. 

Ent. Soc., London, 1891, p. 347.) 


256 


Rothschild, Hon. N.C. A New British Flea (Cerato- 
phyllus farreni, spp. nov.) (Ent. Month. Mag., 
ser. 2, Vol. XVI. [Vol. XLI.], London, 1905, 
p- 255.) 

Saunders, E. Further Notes on the Terminal Segments 
of Aculeate Hymenoptera. (Trans. Ent. Soc., 
London, 1884, p. 251.) 

The Hymenoptera Aculeata of the British 

Isles. London, 1896. 

The Hemiptera-Heteroptera of the British 

Isles. London, 1892. 

Remarks on the Hairs of some of our British 
Hymenopetra. (Trans. Ent. Soc., London, 1878, 
p- 169.) 

Say, T. Descriptions of New Species of North American 
Hymenoptera and Observations on some already 
described. (Bos. Jour. Nat. His., Vol. I.) 

———— A Description of the Insects of North America. 
(2 vols., New York, 1869.) 

Schneider, G. T. Monographia Genesis Rhaphidize 
Linnei Vratislarvie. 1843. 

Sedgwick, A. Peripatus; F. G. Sinclair, Myriapoda ; 
D. Sharp, Insects. (In the Cambridge Nat. 
History. London, 1910.) 

Severin, H. C. and H. P. Severin. Anatomical and His- 
tological Studies of the Female Reproductive 
Organs of the American Sawfly (Cimbex amer- 
icana Leach). (Ann. Ent. Soc. Amer., Vol. L., 
No. 1., Ohio, 1908, p. 87.) 

Sharp, D. The Larva of Cardiophorus asellus (Coleop- 
tera, Fam. Elateride). (Lhe Entomologist, 
Vol. XLV., No. 590, July, 1912, p. 189.) 

———— On the Structure of the Terminal Segment 
in some Male Hemiptera. (Trans. Ent. Soc., 
London, 1890, p. 399.) 

Insects, Part 1 and 2. London, 1899. 
Shelford, R. Studies of the Blattide, XIV. (Hope 
Reports, Vol. VI., 1906, Oxford, p. 231.) 
Shuckard, W. E. A Description of the Superior Wings 
of the Hymenoptera. (Trans. Ent. Soc., London, 

Vol. L., p. 208, 1836.) 

Elements of British Entomology. London, 

1839. 

British Bees. An Introduction to the Study 

of the Natural History and Economy of the Bees 

Indigenous to the British Isles. 


257 


Smith, J. B. A Contribution towards the Knowledge of 
the Mouth-parts of the Diptera. (Trans. Amer. 
Ent. Soc., XVII., 1890, p. 319.) 

Spuler, A. Die Schmetterlinge Europas. Ban 1-4. 
Stuttgart, 1908. 

Staveley, E. F. British Spiders ; An Introduction to the 
Study of Araneide found in Great Britain and 
Ireland. London, 1896. 

British Insects. A Familiar Description of the 
the Form, Structure, Habits and Transforma- 
tions of Insects. London, 1871. 

Swainson, W. and W. Shuckard. On the History and 
Natural Arrangement of Insects. London, 1840. 

Swinton, A. H. Insect Variety, its Propagation and 
Distribution. London. 

Taylor, E. P. Life History, Notes and Control of the 
Green Peach Aphis (Myzus persice). (Jour. 
Economic Ent., Vol. I., p. 83. Concord, N.H., 
1908.) 

Theobald, F. V. The Classification of Mosquitoes. 
(Jour. Trop. Med., Vol. IV., p. 229, 1901.) 

An Account of British Flies. (Vol. I. 

London, 1892.) 

A Monograph of the Culicide. (Vol. L., 

London, 1901.) 

Mosquitoes or Culicids. (A System of Med., 
Vol. II., Part 2, p. 122. London, 1909.) 

———— First Report of Economic Zoology. British 
Museum (Nat. His.), 1903. 

———— Second Report of Economic Zoology. (British 
Museum (Nat. His.), 1904. 

The Insects and Other Allied Pests of Orchard, 
Bush and Hothouse Fruits. Wye, 1909. 

Notes on Rhopalosiphum Solani Kaltenbach. 
(The Entomologist, Vol. XLV., No. 589, June, 
1912, p. 165.) 

Trouvelot, L. The Use of the Antenne in Insects 
(Amer. Nat., XI., 1877, p. 193.) 

Tullberg, T. F. Om Skandinavisken Podurider af 
Underfamiljen Lipurine. Upsala, 1869. 

Urick, F. W. Notes on Some Insect Pests of Trinidad, 
British West Indies, 1894. 

Verrall, G. H. Syrphide of Great Britain, Jan., 1901. 

Viereck, H. L. Hymenoptera of Beulah, New Mexico. 
(Trans. Am. Ent. Soc., XXIX., p. 43, 1903.) 


258 


Walker, F. Insecta Britannica Diptera. (3 Vols., 
London, 1851-56.) 

Watson, J. On the Microscopical Examination of 
Plumules, ete. (Ent. Mth. Mag., II., 1865, p. 1.) 

Watson, N. B. The Root Borer of the Sugar Cane 
(Diaprepes abbreviatus Linn.) (West Ind. Bull., 
Vol. IV., Part 1, p. 37. Barbados, 1903.) 

Waufor, T. W. On Certain Butterfly Scales Charac- 
teristic of Sex. London, 1867. 

West, T. The Foot of the Fly, its Structure and 
Action, ete. (Part J}, Trans. Linn. Soc., London, 
XXIIIL., 1861, p. 393.) 

Westwood, J. O. Observations on the genus Typhlo- 
pone, with Descriptions of several Exotic Species 
of Ants. (Ann. Mag. Nat. His., VI., p. 81, 1843.) 

— Notes on the Wing-veins of Insects. (Trans. 
Ent. Soc., London, ser. 2, 1V., 1857, p. 60.) 

Wheeler, W. M. Ants, their Structure, Development 
and Behaviour. New York, 1910. 

White, F. B. On the Male Genital Armature in the 
Ropalocera. (Trans. Linn. Soc., ser 1, zoo., 1876, 
p- 357.) 

Wickham, H. F. Description of the Larve of some 
Heteromerous and  Rhynchophorus Beetles. 
(Jour. N.Y. Ent. Soc., Vol. IV., 1896, p. 118, 
New York.) 

And the works of Brandt; Child; De Geer; Dietl ; 
Flogel ; Graber ; Kenyon; Kraepelin ; Krausse ; 
Lubbock; Rabl-Ruckard ; Siebold ; Swammer- 
dam; Lord Avebury; C. Warburton (Spiders 
Mites, etc., Vol. IV., Camb. Nat. His.) ; M. Laurie ; 
W. Farneaux ; Lt.-Col. Giles; E. F. Staveley ; 
and G. H. Verrall ‘‘ British Flies,” Vol. I. and IT. 
E. B. Poulton, in the Transactions of the Entomo- 
logical Society of June, 1886, p. 156, of September, 
1887, p. 295; and 1888, p.597. London. Anony- 
mous. Friends of Plant Life (Harms. Pop. Sc.) 
Group 4, p. 3085, No. 26, Oct., 1912). The Green 
Page Moth, Urania [Cydimon] leilus. (West 
Ind. Bull, Vol. III., Part 38, p. 236, Barbados, 
1902.) The Guinea Grass Moth (Remigia re- 
panda Fabr.) (West Ind. Bull, Vol. III., Part 
3, p. 238, Barbados, 1902.) 


@ <a ie 


Ne GAM 


YX 


we OS NS 


the 


Head. 


Thorax. 


Abdomen. 


Imago. 


Larva. 


Egg. 


Male. 


Female. 


Larva. 
Worker. 


Neuter. 


- a 
‘ 
‘ 
” 
a Z - 
' . 
. 
* 
¥. 
' 
. 
‘ ’ 
i. - 
‘ 
7 ri 
° * 7 - 
* a! \ 
. 
, . 
i + 
4 ~ ; i a 
i 
mi 
- ie 
; ‘ 
x = Pe 
= ‘ . sy 
* a4 . 
a 
. 
« . 
= > + 
. “sa - L 
“ i 
* 
a * - 
c+ rs 
» , - 7 + 
. 7) 
oi te a 
. se 7 t ' 
be - © ' 
® ‘ 
- 5! 
baat a 
4 . bi 
t # e ’ - - 
4 . 
E ) 
= . - a! 
= 
. o 1 
q . - - FE - ; 
_ “ 2 - = ° 
© ‘ 
. + 
< = uh 
’ Pr 
: ¢ - 
ca = 
hy 
c , , 
- - 
= ' 3 - . 
¢ Q p if : ‘ 
TO 2. t 
as : 
7 ju 
> a 
ry - : 
a a 7 
te 
a ¥ os 4 
_— ' 3% ~ S 7 
- A * 
= - of 
" — 
ab: - 
7 ’ a « Ss 
. : + 
> 
. a 
. 
‘=< 
- 
ae ® 
er! : j